Project
Gutenberg Consortia
Center's
World Public
Library Collection
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center Collection, a member of the World
Public Library,http://WorldLibrary.net,
bringing the world's eBook collections together.
Conditions
of Use:
This
eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with almost
no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use
it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with
this eBook or full complete details are online at: http://gutenberg.net/license.
Here are 3 of the more major items to consider:
The eBooks
on the PG sites are not 100% public domain, some of them are copyrighted
and used by permission and thus you may charge for redistribution
only via direct permission from the copyright holders.
Project
Gutenberg is a registered trademark [TM]. For any other purpose
than to redistribute eBooks containing the entire Project Gutenberg
file free of charge and with the headers intact, permission is
required.
The public
domain status is per U.S. copyright law. This eBook is from the
Project Gutenberg Consortia Center of the United States.
The mission of the Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to provide
a similar framework for the collection of eBook collections as does
Project Gutenberg for single eBooks, operating under the practices,
and general guidelines of Project Gutenberg. The major additional
function of Project Gutenberg Consortia Center is to manage the addition
of large collections of eBooks from other eBook creation and collection
centers around the world.
For more great classic literature visit:
The
World Public Library and Project Gutenberg Consortia Center, bringing
the world's eBook collections together http://www.Gutenberg.us
High up on the hillside in the midst of a rugged group of jack
pines the Union Jack shook out its folds gallantly in the breeze that
swept down the Kicking Horse Pass. That gallant flag marked the
headquarters of Superintendent Strong, of the North West Mounted
Police, whose special duty it was to preserve law and order along the
construction line of the Canadian Pacific Railway Company, now pushed
west some scores of miles.
Along the tote-road, which ran parallel to the steel, a man, dark
of skin, slight but wiry, came running, his hard panting, his
streaming face, his open mouth proclaiming his exhaustion. At a
little trail that led to the left he paused, noted its course toward
the flaunting flag, turned into it, then struggled up the rocky
hillside till he came to the wooden shack, with a deep porch running
round it, and surrounded by a rustic fence which enclosed a garden
whose neatness illustrated a characteristic of the British soldier.
The runner passed in through the gate and up the little gravel walk
and began to ascend the steps.
"Halt!" A quick sharp voice arrested him. "What do you want
here?" From the side of the shack an orderly appeared, neat, trim
and dandified in appearance, from his polished boots to his wide
cowboy hat.
"Beeg Chief," panted the runner. "Me--see--beeg Chief--queeck."
The orderly looked him over and hesitated.
"What do you want Big Chief for?"
"Me--want--say somet'ing," said the little man, fighting to recover
his breath, "somet'ing beeg--sure beeg." He made a step toward the
door.
"Halt there!" said the orderly sharply. "Keep out, you half-
breed!"
"See--beeg Chief--queeck," panted the half-breed, for so he was,
with fierce insistence.
The orderly hesitated. A year ago he would have hustled him off
the porch in short order. But these days were anxious days. Rumors
wild and terrifying were running through the trails of the dark
forest. Everywhere were suspicion and unrest. The Indian tribes
throughout the western territories and in the eastern part of British
Columbia, under cover of an unwonted quiet, were in a state of
excitement, and this none knew better than the North West Mounted
Police. With stoical unconcern the Police patroled their beats, rode
in upon the reserves, careless, cheery, but with eyes vigilant for
signs and with ears alert for sounds of the coming storm. Only the
Mounted Police, however, and a few old-timers who knew the Indians and
their half-breed kindred gave a single moment's thought to the bare
possibility of danger. The vast majority of the Canadian people knew
nothing of the tempestuous gatherings of French half-breed settlers in
little hamlets upon the northern plains along the Saskatchewan. The
fiery resolutions reported now and then in the newspapers reciting the
wrongs and proclaiming the rights of these remote, ignorant,
insignificant, half-tamed pioneers of civilization roused but faint
interest in the minds of the people of Canada. Formal resolutions and
petitions of rights had been regularly sent during the past two years
to Ottawa and there as regularly pigeon-holed above the desks of
deputy ministers. The politicians had a somewhat dim notion that
there was some sort of row on among the "breeds" about Prince Albert
and Battleford, but this concerned them little. The members of the
Opposition found in the resolutions and petitions of rights useful
ammunition for attack upon the Government. In purple periods the
leader arraigned the supineness and the indifference of the Premier
and his Government to "the rights and wrongs of our fellow-citizens
who, amid the hardships of a pioneer civilization, were laying broad
and deep the foundations of Empire." But after the smoke and noise of
the explosion had passed both Opposition and Government speedily
forgot the half-breed and his tempestuous gatherings in the stores and
schoolhouses, at church doors and in open camps, along the banks of
the far away Saskatchewan.
There were a few men, however, that could not forget. An Indian
agent here and there with a sense of responsibility beyond the
pickings of his post, a Hudson Bay factor whose long experience in
handling the affairs of half-breeds and Indians instructed him to
read as from a printed page what to others were meaningless and
incoherent happenings, and above all the officers of the Mounted
Police, whose duty it was to preserve the "pax Britannica" over some
three hundred thousand square miles of Her Majesty's dominions in this
far northwest reach of Empire, these carried night and day an
uneasiness in their minds which found vent from time to time in
reports and telegraphic messages to members of Government and other
officials at headquarters, who slept on, however, undisturbed. But
the word was passed along the line of Police posts over the plains
and far out into British Columbia to watch for signs and to be on
guard. The Police paid little heed to the high-sounding resolutions
of a few angry excitable half-breeds, who, daring though they were
and thoroughly able to give a good account of themselves in any
trouble that might arise, were quite insignificant in number; but
there was another peril, so serious, so terrible, that the oldest
officer on the force spoke of it with face growing grave and with
lowered voice--the peril of an Indian uprising.
All this and more made the trim orderly hesitate. A runner with
news was not to be kicked unceremoniously off the porch in these
days, but to be considered.
"You want to see the Superintendent, eh?"
"Oui, for sure--queeck--run ten mile," replied the half-breed with
angry impatience.
"All right," said the orderly, "what's your name?"
"Name? Me, Pinault--Pierre Pinault. Ah, sacr-r-e! Beeg Chief
know me--Pinault." The little man drew himself up.
"All right! Wait!" replied the orderly, and passed into the shack.
He had hardly disappeared when he was back again, obviously shaken
out of his correct military form.
"Go in!" he said sharply. "Get a move on! What are you waiting
for?"
The half-breed threw him a sidelong glance of contempt and passed
quickly into the "Beeg Chief's" presence.
Superintendent Strong was a man prompt in decision and prompt in
action, a man of courage, too, unquestioned, and with that bulldog
spirit that sees things through to a finish. To these qualities it
was that he owed his present command, for it was no insignificant
business to keep the peace and to make the law run along the line of
the Canadian Pacific Railway through the Kicking Horse Pass during
construction days.
The half-breed had been but a few minutes with the Chief when the
orderly was again startled out of his military decorum by the
bursting open of the Superintendent's door and the sharp rattle of
the Superintendent's orders.
"Send Sergeant Ferry to me at once and have my horse and his
brought round immediately!" The orderly sprang to attention and
saluted.
"Yes, sir!" he replied, and swiftly departed.
A few minutes' conference with Sergeant Ferry, a few brief commands
to the orderly, and the Superintendent and Sergeant were on their way
down the steep hillside toward the tote-road that led eastward through
the pass. A half-hour's ride brought them to a trail that led off to
the south, into which the Superintendent, followed by the Sergeant,
turned his horse. Not a word was spoken by either man. It was not
the Superintendent's custom to share his plans with his subordinate
officers until it became necessary. "What you keep behind your
teeth," was a favorite maxim with the Superintendent, "will harm
neither yourself nor any other man." They were on the old Kootenay
Trail, for a hundred years and more the ancient pathway of barter and
of war for the Indian tribes that hunted the western plains and the
foothill country and brought their pelts to the coast by way of the
Columbia River. Along the lower levels the old trail ran, avoiding,
with the sure instinct of a skilled engineer, nature's obstacles, and
taking full advantage of every sloping hillside and every open stretch
of woods. Now and then, however, the trail must needs burrow through
a deep thicket of spruce and jack pine and scramble up a rocky ridge,
where the horses, trained as they were in mountain climbing, had all
they could do to keep their feet.
Ten miles and more they followed the tortuous trail, skirting
mountain peaks and burrowing through underbrush, scrambling up rocky
ridges and sliding down their farther sides, till they came to a
park-like country where from the grassy sward the big Douglas firs,
trimmed clear of lower growth and standing spaced apart, lifted on red
and glistening trunks their lofty crowns of tufted evergreen far above
the lesser trees.
As they approached the open country the Superintendent proceeded
with greater caution, pausing now and then to listen.
"There ought to be a big powwow going on somewhere near," he said
to his Sergeant, "but I can hear nothing. Can you?"
The Sergeant leaned over his horse's ears.
"No, sir, not a sound."
"And yet it can't be far away," growled the Superintendent.
The trail led through the big firs and dipped into a little grassy
valley set round with thickets on every side. Into this open glade
they rode. The Superintendent was plainly disturbed and irritated;
irritated because surprised and puzzled. Where he had expected to
find a big Indian powwow he found only a quiet sunny glade in the
midst of a silent forest. Sergeant Ferry waited behind him in
respectful silence, too wise to offer any observation upon the
situation. Hence in the Superintendent grew a deeper irritation.
"Well, I'll be--!" He paused abruptly. The Superintendent rarely
used profanity. He reserved this form of emphasis for supreme
moments. He was possessed of a dramatic temperament and appreciated
at its full value the effect of a climax. The climax had not yet
arrived, hence his self-control.
"Exactly so," said the Sergeant, determined to be agreeable.
"What's that?"
"They don't seem to be here, sir," replied the Sergeant, staring up
into the trees.
"Where?" cried the Superintendent, following the direction of the
Sergeant's eyes. "Do you suppose they're a lot of confounded
monkeys?"
"Exactly--that is--no, sir, not at all, sir. But--"
"They were to have been here," said the Superintendent angrily.
"My information was most positive and trustworthy."
"Exactly so, sir," replied the Sergeant. "But they haven't been
here at all!" The Superintendent impatiently glared at the Sergeant,
as if he were somehow responsible for this inexplicable failure upon
the part of the Indians.
"Exactly--that is--no, sir. No sign. Not a sign." The Sergeant
was most emphatic.
"Well, then, where in--where--? The Superintendent felt himself
rapidly approaching an emotional climax and took himself back with a
jerk. "Well," be continued, with obvious self-control, "let's look
about a bit."
With keen and practised eyes they searched the glade, and the
forest round about it, and the trails leading to it.
"Not a sign," said the Superintendent emphatically, "and for the
first time in my experience Pinault is wrong--the very first time. He
was dead sure."
"Pinault--generally right, sir," observed the Sergeant.
"Always."
"Exactly so. But this time--"
"He's been fooled," declared the Superintendent. "A big sun dance
was planned for this identical spot. They were all to be here, every
tribe represented, the Stonies even had been drawn into it, some of
the young bloods I suppose. And, more than that, the Sioux from
across the line."
"The Sioux, eh?" said the Sergeant. "I didn't know the Sioux were
in this."
"Ah, perhaps not, but I have information that the Sioux--in fact--"
here the Superintendent dropped his voice and unconsciously glanced
about him, "the Sioux are very much in this, and old Copperhead
himself is the moving spirit of the whole business."
"Copperhead!" exclaimed the Sergeant in an equally subdued tone.
"Yes, sir, that old devil is taking a hand in the game. My
information was that he was to have been here to-day, and, by the
Lord Harry! if he had been we would have put him where the dogs
wouldn't bite him. The thing is growing serious."
"Serious!" exclaimed the Sergeant in unwonted excitement. "You
just bet--that is exactly so, sir. Why the Sioux must be good for a
thousand."
"A thousand!" exclaimed the Superintendent. "I've the most
positive information that the Sioux could place in the war path two
thousand fighting-men inside of a month. And old Copperhead is at
the bottom of it all. We want that old snake, and we want him
badly." And the Superintendent swung on to his horse and set off on
the return trip.
"Well, sir, we generally get what we want in that way," volunteered
the Sergeant, following his chief.
"We do--in the long run. But in this same old Copperhead we have
the acutest Indian brain in all the western country. Sitting Bull
was a fighter, Copperhead is a schemer."
They rode in silence, the Sergeant busy with a dozen schemes
whereby he might lay old Copperhead by the heels; the Superintendent
planning likewise. But in the Superintendent's plans the Sergeant
had no place. The capture of the great Sioux schemer must be
entrusted to a cooler head than that of the impulsive, daring,
loyal-hearted Sergeant.
For full five miles they rode in unbroken silence, the
Superintendent going before with head pressed down on his breast and
eyes fixed upon the winding trail. A heavy load lay upon him. True,
his immediate sphere of duty lay along the line of the Canadian
Pacific Railway, but as an officer of Her Majesty's North West Mounted
Police he shared with the other officers of that force the full
responsibility of holding in steadfast loyalty the tribes of Western
Indians. His knowledge of the presence in the country of the
arch-plotter of the powerful and warlike Sioux from across the line
entailed a new burden. Well he knew that his superior officer would
simply expect him to deal with the situation in a satisfactory
manner. But how, was the puzzle. A mere handful of men he had under
his immediate command and these dispersed in ones and twos along the
line of railway, and not one of them fit to cope with the cunning and
daring Sioux.
With startling abruptness he gave utterance to his thoughts.
"We must get him--and quick. Things are moving too rapidly for any
delay. The truth is," he continued, with a deepening impatience in
his voice, "the truth is we are short-handed. We ought to be able to
patrol every trail in this country. That old villain has fooled us
to-day and he'll fool us again. And he has fooled Pinault, the
smartest breed we've got. He's far too clever to be around loose
among our Indians."
Again they rode along in silence, the Superintendent thinking
deeply.
"I know where he is!" he exclaimed suddenly, pulling up his horse.
"I know where he is--this blessed minute. He's on the Sun Dance
Trail and in the Sun Dance Canyon, and they're having the biggest
kind of a powwow."
"The Sun Dance!" echoed the Sergeant. "By Jove, if only Sergeant
Cameron were on this job! He knows the Sun Dance inside and out,
every foot."
The Superintendent swung his horse sharply round to face his
Sergeant.
"Cameron!" he exclaimed thoughtfully. "Cameron! I believe you're
right. He's the man--the very man. But," he added with sudden
remembrance, "he's left the Force."
"Left the Force, sir. Yes, sir," echoed the Sergeant with a grin.
"He appeared to have a fairly good reason, too."
"Reason!" snorted the Superintendent. "Reason! What in--? What
did he--? Why did he pull off that fool stunt at this particular
time? A kid like him has no business getting married."
"Mighty fine girl, sir," suggested the Sergeant warmly. "Mighty
lucky chap. Not many fellows could resist such a sharp attack as he
had."
"Fine girl! Oh, of course, of course--fine girl certainly. Fine
girl. But what's that got to do with it?"
"Well, sir," ventured the Sergeant in a tone of surprise, "a good
deal, sir, I should say. By Jove, sir, I could have--if I could have
pulled it off myself--but of course she was an old flame of Cameron's
and I'd no chance."
"But the Service, sir!" exclaimed the Superintendent with growing
indignation. "The Service! Why! Cameron was right in line for
promotion. He had the making of a most useful officer. And with
this trouble coming on it was--it was--a highly foolish, indeed a
highly reprehensible proceeding, sir." The Superintendent was
rapidly mounting his pet hobby, which was the Force in which he had
the honor to be an officer, the far-famed North West Mounted Police.
For the Service he had sacrificed everything in life, ease, wealth,
home, yes, even wife and family, to a certain extent. With him the
Force was a passion. For it he lived and breathed. That anyone should
desert it for any cause soever was to him an act unexplainable. He
almost reckoned it treason.
But the question was one that touched the Sergeant as well, and
deeply. Hence, though he well knew his Chief's dominant passion, he
ventured an argument.
"A mighty fine girl, sir, something very special. She saw me
through a mountain fever once, and I know--"
"Oh, the deuce take it, Sergeant! The girl is all right. I grant
you all that. But is that any reason why a man should desert the
Force? And now of all times? He's only a kid. So is she. She
can't be twenty-five."
"Twenty-five? Good Lord, no!" exclaimed the shocked Sergeant.
"She isn't a day over twenty. Why, look at her. She's--"
"Oh, tut-tut! If she's twenty it makes it all the worse. Why
couldn't they wait till this fuss was over? Why, sir, when I was
twenty--" The Superintendent paused abruptly.
"Yes, sir?" The Sergeant's manner was respectful and expectant.
"Never mind," said the Superintendent. "Why rush the thing, I
say?"
"Well, sir, I did hear that there was a sudden change in Cameron's
home affairs in Scotland, sir. His father died suddenly, I believe.
The estate was sold up and his sister, the only other child, was left
all alone. Cameron felt it necessary to get a home together--though I
don't suppose he needed any excuse. Never saw a man so hard hit
myself."
"Except yourself, Sergeant, eh?" said the Superintendent, relaxing
into a grim smile.
"Oh, well, of course, sir, I'm not going to deny it. But you see,"
continued the Sergeant, his pride being touched, "he had known her
down East--worked on her father's farm--young gentleman--fresh from
college--culture, you know, manner--style and that sort of thing--
rushed her clean off her feet."
"I thought you said it was Cameron who was the one hard hit?"
"So it was, sir. Hadn't seen her for a couple of years or so.
Left her a country lass, uncouth, ignorant--at least so they say."
"Who say?"
"Well, her friends--Dr. Martin and the nurse at the hospital. But
I can't believe them, simply impossible. That this girl two years
ago should have been an ignorant, clumsy, uncouth country lass is
impossible. However, Cameron came on her here, transfigured,
glorified so to speak, consequently fell over neck in love, went
quite batty in fact. A secret flame apparently smoldering all these
months suddenly burst into a blaze--a blaze, by Jove!-- regular
conflagration. And no wonder, sir, when you look at her, her face,
her form, her style--"
"Oh, come, Sergeant, we'll move on. Let's keep at the business in
hand. The question is what's to do. That old snake Copperhead is
three hundred miles from here on the Sun Dance, plotting hell for
this country, and we want him. As you say, Cameron's our man. I
wonder," continued the Superintendent after a pause, "I wonder if we
could get him."
"I should say certainly not!" replied the Sergeant promptly. "He's
only a few months married, sir."
"He might," mused the Superintendent, "if it were properly put to
him. It would be a great thing for the Service. He's the man. By
the Lord Harry, he's the only man! In short," with a resounding
whack upon his thigh, "he has got to come. The situation is too
serious for trifling."
"Trifling?" said the Sergeant to himself in undertone.
"We'll go for him. We'll send for him." The Superintendent turned
and glanced at his companion.
"Not me, sir, I hope. You can quite see, sir, I'd be a mighty poor
advocate. Couldn't face those blue eyes, sir. They make me grow
quite weak. Chills and fever--in short, temporary delirium."
"Oh, well, Sergeant," replied the Superintendent, "if it's as bad
as that--"
"You don't know her, sir. Those eyes! They can burn in blue flame
or melt in--"
"Oh, yes, yes, I've no doubt." The Superintendent's voice had a
touch of pity, if not contempt. "We won't expose you, Sergeant. But
all the same we'll make a try for Cameron." His voice grew stern.
His lips drew to a line. "And we'll get him."
The Sergeant's horse took a sudden plunge forward.
"Here, you beast!" he cried, with a fierce oath. "Come back here!
What's the matter with you?" He threw the animal back on his
haunches with a savage jerk, a most unaccustomed thing with the
Sergeant.
"Yes," pursued the Superintendent, "the situation demands it.
Cameron's the man. It's his old stamping-ground. He knows every
twist of its trails. And he's a wonder, a genius for handling just
such a business as this."
The Sergeant made no reply. He was apparently having some trouble
with his horse.
"Of course," continued the Superintendent, with a glance at his
Sergeant's face, "it's hard on her, but--" dismissing that feature of
the case lightly--"in a situation like this everything must give way.
The latest news is exceedingly grave. The trouble along the
Saskatchewan looks to me exceedingly serious. These half-breeds
there have real grievances. I know them well, excitable, turbulent
in their spirits, uncontrollable, but easily handled if decently
treated. They've sent their petitions again and again to Ottawa, and
here are these Members of Parliament making fool speeches, and the
Government pooh-poohing the whole movement, and meantime Riel orating
and organizing."
"Riel? Who's he?" inquired the Sergeant.
"Riel? You don't know Riel? That's what comes of being an island-
bred Britisher. You people know nothing outside your own little two
by four patch on the world's map. Haven't you heard of Riel?"
"Oh, yes, by the way, I've heard about the Johnny. Mixed up in
something before in this country, wasn't he?"
"Well, rather! The rebel leader of 1870. Cost us some
considerable trouble, too. There's bound to be mischief where that
hair-brained four-flusher gets a crowd to listen to him. For egoist
though he is, he possesses a wonderful power over the half-breeds. He
knows how to work. And somehow, too, they're suspicious of all
Canadians, as they call the new settlers from the East, ready to
believe anything they're told, and with plenty of courage to risk a
row."
"What's the row about, anyway?" inquired the Sergeant. "I could
never quite get it."
"Oh, there are many causes. These half-breeds are squatters, many
of them. They have introduced the same system of survey on the
Saskatchewan as their ancestors had on the St. Lawrence, and later on
the Red, the system of 'Strip Farms.' That is, farms with narrow
fronts upon the river and extending back from a mile to four miles, a
poor arrangement for farming but mighty fine for social purposes. I
tell you, it takes the loneliness and isolation out of pioneer life.
I've lived among them, and the strip-farm survey possesses distinct
social advantages. You have two rows of houses a few rods apart, and
between them the river, affording an ice roadway in the winter and a
waterway in the summer. And to see a flotilla of canoes full of young
people, with fiddles and concertinas going, paddle down the river on
their way to a neighbor's house for a dance, is something to remember.
For my part I don't wonder that these people resent the action of the
Government in introducing a completely new survey without saying 'by
your leave.' There are troubles, too, about their land patents."
"How many of these half-breeds are there anyway?"
"Well, only a few hundreds I should say. But it isn't the half-
breeds we fear. The mischief of it is they have been sending runners
all through this country to their red-skin friends and relatives,
holding out all sorts of promises, the restoration of their hunting
grounds to the Indians, the establishing of an empire of the North,
from which the white race shall be excluded. I've heard them. Just
enough truth and sense in the whole mad scheme to appeal to the Indian
mind. The older men, the chiefs, are quiet so far, but the young
braves are getting out of hand. You see they have no longer their
ancient excitement of war and the chase. Life has grown monotonous,
to the young men especially, on the reserves. They are chafing under
control, and the prospect of a fight appeals to them. In every tribe
sun dances are being held, braves are being made, and from across the
other side weapons are being introduced. And now that this old snake
Copperhead has crossed the line the thing takes an ugly look. He's
undeniably brainy, a fearless fighter, an extraordinary organizer, has
great influence with his own people and is greatly respected among our
tribes. If an Indian war should break out with Copperhead running
it--well--! That's why it's important to get this old devil. And it
must be done quietly. Any movement in force on our part would set the
prairie on fire. The thing has got to be done by one or two men.
That's why we must have Cameron."
In spite of his indignation the Sergeant was impressed. Never had
he heard his Chief discourse at such length, and never had he heard
his Chief use the word "danger." It began to dawn upon his mind that
possibly it might not be such a crime as he had at first considered it
to lure Cameron away from his newly made home and his newly wedded
wife to do this bit of service for his country in an hour of serious
if not desperate need.
But Sergeant Cameron was done with the Service for ever. An
accumulating current of events had swept him from his place in the
Force, as an unheeding traveler crossing a mountain torrent is swept
from his feet by a raging freshet. The sudden blazing of his
smoldering love into a consuming flame for the clumsy country girl,
for whom two years ago he had cherished a pitying affection, threw up
upon the horizon of his life and into startling clearness a new and
absorbing objective. In one brief quarter of an hour his life had
gathered itself into a single purpose; a purpose, to wit, to make a
home to which he might bring this girl he had come to love with such
swift and fierce intensity, to make a home for her where she could be
his own, and for ever. All the vehement passion of his Highland
nature was concentrated upon the accomplishing of this purpose. That
he should ever have come to love Mandy Haley, the overworked slattern
on her father's Ontario farm, while a thing of wonder, was not the
chief wonder to him. His wonder now was that he should ever have been
so besottedly dull of wit and so stupidly unseeing as to allow the
unlovely exterior of the girl to hide the radiant soul within. That
in two brief years she had transformed herself into a woman of such
perfectly balanced efficiency in her profession as nurse, and a
creature of such fascinating comeliness, was only another proof of his
own insensate egotism, and another proof, too, of those rare powers
that slumbered in the girl's soul unknown to herself and to her world.
Small wonder that with her unfolding Cameron's whole world should
become new.
Hard upon this experience the unexpected news of his father's death
and of the consequent winding up of the tangled affairs of the estate
threw upon Cameron the responsibility of caring for his young sister,
now left alone in the Homeland, except for distant kindred of whom
they had but slight knowledge.
A home was immediately and imperatively necessary, and hence he
must at once, as a preliminary, be married. Cameron fortunately
remembered that young Fraser, whom he had known in his Fort Macleod
days, was dead keen to get rid of the "Big Horn Ranch." This ranch
lay nestling cozily among the foothills and in sight of the towering
peaks of the Rockies, and was so well watered with little lakes and
streams that when his eyes fell upon it Cameron was conscious of a
sharp pang of homesickness, so suggestive was it of the beloved Glen
Cuagh Oir of his own Homeland. There would be a thousand pounds or
more left from his father's estate. Everybody said it was a safe,
indeed a most profitable investment.
A week's leave of absence sufficed for Cameron to close the deal
with Fraser, a reckless and gallant young Highlander, whose
chivalrous soul, kindling at Cameron's romantic story, prompted a
generous reduction in the price of the ranch and its outfit complete.
Hence when Mandy's shrewd and experienced head had scanned the
contract and cast up the inventory of steers and horses, with pigs and
poultry thrown in, and had found nothing amiss with the deal--indeed
it was rather better than she had hoped--there was no holding of
Cameron any longer. Married he would be and without delay.
The only drag in the proceedings had come from the Superintendent,
who, on getting wind of Cameron's purpose, had thought, by promptly
promoting him from Corporal to Sergeant, to tie him more tightly to
the Service and hold him, if only for a few months, "till this
trouble should blow over." But Cameron knew of no trouble. The
trouble was only in the Superintendent's mind, or indeed was only a
shrewd scheme to hold Cameron to his duty. A rancher he would be,
and a famous rancher's wife Mandy would make. And as for his sister
Moira, had she not highly specialized in pigs and poultry on the old
home farm at the Cuagh Oir? There was no stopping the resistless rush
of his passionate purpose. Everything combined to urge him on. Even
his college mate and one time football comrade of the old Edinburgh
days, the wise, cool-headed Dr. Martin, now in charge of the Canadian
Pacific Railway Hospital, as also the little nurse who, through those
momentous months of Mandy's transforming, had been to her guide,
philosopher and friend, both had agreed that there was no good reason
for delay. True, Cameron had no means of getting inside the doctor's
mind and therefore had no knowledge of the vision that came nightly to
torment him in his dreams and the memory that came daily to haunt his
waking hours; a vision and a memory of a trim little figure in a blue
serge gown, of eyes brown, now sunny with laughing light, now soft
with unshed tears, of hair that got itself into a most bewildering
perplexity of waves and curls, of lips curving deliciously, of a voice
with a wonderfully soft Highland accent; the vision and memory of
Moira, Cameron's sister, as she had appeared to him in the Glen Cuagh
Oir at her father's door. Had Cameron known of this tormenting vision
and this haunting memory he might have questioned the perfect
sincerity of his friend's counsel. But Dr. Martin kept his secret
well and none shared with him his visions and his dreams.
So there had been only the Superintendent to oppose.
Hence, because no really valid objection could be offered, the
marriage was made. And with much shrieking of engines--it seemed as
if all the engines with their crews within a hundred miles had
gathered to the celebration--with loud thunder of exploding
torpedoes, with tumultuous cheering of the construction gangs hauled
thither on gravel trains, with congratulations of railroad officials
and of the doctor, with the tearful smiles of the little nurse, and
with grudging but finally hearty good wishes of the Superintendent,
they had ridden off down the Kootenay Trail for their honeymoon, on
their way to the Big Horn Ranch some hundreds of miles across the
mountains.
There on the Big Horn Ranch through the long summer days together
they rode the ranges after the cattle, cooking their food in the open
and camping under the stars where night found them, care-free and
deeply happy, drinking long full draughts of that mingled wine of life
into which health and youth and love and God's sweet sun and air
poured their rare vintage. The world was far away and quite
forgotten.
Summer deepened into autumn, the fall round-up was approaching, and
there came a September day of such limpid light and such nippy
sprightly air as to suggest to Mandy nothing less than a holiday.
"Let's strike!" she cried to her husband, as she looked out toward
the rolling hills and the overtopping peaks shining clear in the
early morning light. "Let's strike and go a-fishing."
Her husband let his eyes wander over the full curves of her strong
and supple body and rest upon the face, brown and wholesome, lit with
her deep blue eyes and crowned with the red-gold masses of her hair,
and exclaimed:
"You need a holiday, Mandy. I can see it in the drooping lines of
your figure, and in the paling of your cheeks. In short," moving
toward her, "you need some one to care for you."
"Not just at this moment, young man," she cried, darting round the
table. "But, come, what do you say to a day's fishing away up the
Little Horn?"
"The Little Horn?"
"Yes, you know the little creek running into the Big Horn away up
the gulch where we went one day in the spring. You said there were
fish there."
"Yes, but why 'Little Horn,' pray? And who calls it so? I suppose
you know that the Big Horn gets its name from the Big Horn, the
mountain sheep that once roamed the rocks yonder, and in that sense
there's no Little Horn."
"Well, 'Little Horn' I call it," said his wife, "and shall. And if
the big stream is the Big Horn, surely the little stream should be
the Little Horn. But what about the fishing? Is it a go?"
"Well, rather! Get the grub, as your Canadian speech hath it."
"My Canadian speech!" echoed his wife scornfully. "You're just as
much Canadian as I am."
"And I shall get the ponies. Half an hour will do for me."
"And less for me," cried Mandy, dancing off to her work.
And she was right. For, clever housekeeper that she was, she stood
with her hamper packed and the fishing tackle ready long before her
husband appeared with the ponies.
The trail led steadily upward through winding valleys, but for the
most part along the Big Horn, till as it neared a scraggy pine-wood
it bore sharply to the left, and, clambering round an immense
shoulder of rock, it emerged upon a long and comparatively level
ridge of land that rolled in gentle undulations down into a wide
park-like valley set out with clumps of birch and poplar, with here
and there the shimmer of a lake showing between the yellow and brown
of the leaves.
"Oh, what a picture!" cried Mandy, reining up her pony. "What a
ranch that would make, Allan! Who owns it? Why did we never come
this way before?"
"Piegan Reserve," said her husband briefly.
"How beautiful! How did they get this particular bit?"
"They gave up a lot for it," said Cameron drily.
"But think, such a lovely bit of country for a few Indians! How
many are there?"
"Some hundreds. Five hundred or so. And a tricky bunch they are.
They're over-fond of cattle to be really desirable neighbors."
"Well, I think it rather a pity!"
"Look yonder!" cried her husband, sweeping his arm toward the
eastern horizon. From the height on which they stood a wonderful
panorama of hill and valley, river, lake and plain lay spread out
before them. "All that and for nine hundred miles beyond that line
these Indians and their kin gave up to us under persuasion. There
was something due them, eh? Let's move on."
For a mile or more the trail ran along the high plateau skirting
the Piegan Reserve, where it branched sharply to the right. Cameron
paused.
"You see that trail?" pointing to the branch that led to the left
and downward into the valley. "That is one of the oldest and most
famous of all Indian trails. It strikes down through the Crow's Nest
Pass and beyond the pass joins the ancient Sun Dance Trail. That's my
old beat. And weird things are a-doing along that same old Sun Dance
Trail this blessed minute or I miss my guess. I venture to say that
this old trail has often been marked with blood from end to end in the
fierce old days."
"Let's go," said Mandy, with a shudder, and, turning her pony to
the right, she took the trail that led them down from the plateau,
plunged into a valley, wound among rocks and thickets of pine till it
reached a tumbling mountain torrent of gray-blue water, fed from
glaciers high up between the great peaks beyond.
"My Little Horn!" cried Mandy with delight.
Down by its rushing water they scrambled till they came to a sunny
glade where the little fretful torrent pitched itself headlong into a
deep shady pool, whence, as if rested in those quiet deeps, it issued
at first with gentle murmuring till, out of earshot of the pool, it
broke again into turbulent raging, brawling its way to the Big Horn
below.
Mandy could hardly wait for the unloading and tethering of the
ponies.
"Now," she cried, when all was ready, "for my very first fish. How
shall I fling this hook and where?"
"Try a cast yonder, just beside that overhanging willow. Don't
splash! Try again--drop it lightly. That's better. Don't tell me
you've never cast a fly before."
"Never in my life."
"Let it float down a bit. Now back. Hold it up and let it dance
there. I'll just have a pipe."
But next moment Cameron's pipe was forgotten. With a shout he
sprang to his wife's side.
"By Jove, you've got him!"
"No! No! Leave me alone! Just tell me what to do. Go away!
Don't touch me! Oh-h-h! He's gone!"
"Not a bit. Reel him up--reel him up a little."
"Oh, I can't reel the thing! Oh! Oh-h-h! Is he gone?"
"Hold up. Don't haul him too quickly--keep him playing. Wait till
I get the net." He rushed for the landing net.
"Oh, he's gone! He's gone! Oh, I'm so mad!" She stamped savagely
on the grass. "He was a monster."
"They always are," said her husband gravely. "The fellows that get
off, I mean."
"Now you're just laughing at me, and I won't have it! I could just
sit down and cry! My very first fish!"
"Never mind, Mandy, we'll get him or just as good a one again."
"Never! He'll never bite again. He isn't such a fool."
"Well, they do. They're just like the rest of us. They keep
nibbling till they get caught; else there would be no fun in fishing
or in-- Now try another throw--same place--a little farther down.
Ah! That was a fine cast. Once more. No, no, not that way. Flip
it lightly and if you ever get a bite hold your rod so. See? Press
the end against your body so that you can reel your fish in. And
don't hurry these big fellows. You lose them and you lose your fun."
"I don't want the fun," cried Mandy, "but I do want that fish and
I'm going to get him."
"By Jove, I believe you just will!" The young man's dark eyes
flashed an admiring glance over the strong, supple, swaying figure of
the girl at his side, whose every move, as she cast her fly, seemed
specially designed to reveal some new combination of the graceful
curves of her well-knit body.
"Keep flicking there. You'll get him. He's just sulking. If he
only knew, he'd hurry up."
"Knew what?"
"Who was fishing for him."
"Oh! Oh! I've got him." The girl was dancing excitedly along the
bank. "No! Oh, what a wretch! He's gone. Now if I get him you
tell me what to do, but don't touch me."
"All you have to do is to hold him steady at the first. Keep your
line fairly tight. If he begins to plunge, give him line. If he
slacks, reel in. Keep him nice and steady, just like a horse on the
bit."
"Oh, why didn't you tell me before? I know exactly what that
means--just like a colt, eh? I can handle a colt."
"Exactly! Now try lower down--let your fly float down a bit--
there."
Again there was a wild shriek from the girl.
"Oh, I've got him sure! Now get the net."
"Don't jump about so! Steady now--steady--that's better. Fine!
Fine work! Let him go a bit--no, check--wind him up. Look out! Not
too quick! Fine! Oh! Look out! Get him away from that jam! Reel
him up! Quick! Now play him! Let me help you."
"Don't you dare touch this rod, Allan Cameron, or there'll be
trouble!"
"Quite right--pardon me--quite right. Steady! You'll get him
sure. And he's a beauty, a perfect Rainbow beauty."
"Keep quiet, now," admonished Mandy. "Don't shout so. Tell me
quietly what to do."
"Do as you like. You can handle him. Just watch and wait--feel
him all the time. Ah-h-h! For Heaven's sake don't let him into that
jam! There he goes up stream! That's better! Good!"
"Don't get so excited! Don't yell so!" again admonished Mandy.
"Tell me quietly."
"Quietly? Who's yelling, I'd like to know? Who's excited? I
won't say another word. I'll get the landing-net ready for the final
act."
"Don't leave me! Tell me just what to do. He's getting tired, I
think."
"Watch him close. Wind him up a bit. Get all the line in you can.
Steady! Let go! Let go! Let him run! Now wind him again. Wait,
hold him so, just a moment--a little nearer! Hurrah! Hurrah! I've
got him and he's a beauty--a perfectly typical Rainbow trout."
"Oh, you beauty!" cried Mandy, down on her knees beside the trout
that lay flapping on the grass. "What a shame! Oh, what a shame!
Oh, put him in again, Allan, I don't want him. Poor dear, what a
shame."
"But we must weigh him, you see," remonstrated her husband. "And
we need him for tea, you know. He really doesn't feel it much. There
are lots more. Try another cast. I'll attend to this chap."
"I feel just like a murderer," said Mandy. "But isn't it glorious?
Well, I'll just try one more. Aren't you going to get your rod out
too?"
"Well, rather! What a pool, all unspoiled, all unfished!"
"Does no one fish up here?"
"Yes, the Police come at times from the Fort. And Wyckham, our
neighbor. And old man Thatcher, a born angler, though he says it's
not sport, but murder."
"Why not sport?"
"Why? Old Thatcher said to me one day, 'Them fish would climb a
tree to get at your hook. That ain't no sport.'"
But sport, and noble sport, they found it through the long
afternoon, so that, when through the scraggy pines the sun began to
show red in the western sky, a score or more lusty, glittering,
speckled Rainbow trout lay on the grass beside the shady pool.
Tired with their sport, they lay upon the grassy sward, luxuriating
in the warm sun.
"Now, Allan," cried Mandy, "I'll make tea ready if you get some
wood for the fire. You ought to be thankful I taught you how to use
the ax. Do you remember?"
"Thankful? Well, I should say. Do YOU remember that day, Mandy?"
"Remember!" cried the girl, with horror in her tone. "Oh, don't
speak of it. It's too awful to think of."
"Awful what?"
"Ugh!" she shuddered, "I can't bear to think of it. I wish you
could forget."
"Forget what?"
"What? How can you ask? That awful, horrid, uncouth, sloppy
girl." Again Mandy shuddered. "Those hands, big, coarse, red,
ugly."
"Yes," cried Allan savagely, "the badge of slavery for a whole
household of folk too ignorant to know the price that was being paid
for the service rendered them."
"And the hair," continued Mandy relentlessly, "uncombed, filthy,
horrid. And the dress, and--"
"Stop it!" cried Allan peremptorily.
"No, let me go on. The stupid face, the ignorant mind, the uncouth
speech, the vulgar manners. Oh, I loathe the picture, and I wonder
you can ever bear to look at her again. And, oh, I wish you could
forget."
"Forget!" The young man's lean, swarthy face seemed to light up
with the deep glowing fires in his dark eyes. His voice grew
vibrant. "Forget! Never while I live. Do you know what _I_
remember?"
"Ah, spare me!" moaned his wife, putting her hands over his mouth.
"Do you know what _I_ remember?" he repeated, pulling her hands
away and holding them fast. "A girl with hands, face, hair, form,
dress, manners damned to coarseness by a cruel environment? That?
No! No! To-day as I look back I remember only two blue eyes, deep,
deep as wells, soft, blue, and wonderfully kind. And I remember all
through those days--and hard days they were to a green young fool
fresh from the Old Country trying to keep pace with your farm-bred
demon-worker Perkins--I remember all through those days a girl that
never was too tired with her own unending toil to think of others, and
especially to help out with many a kindness a home- sick, hand-sore,
foot-sore stranger who hardly knew a buck-saw from a turnip hoe, and
was equally strange to the uses of both, a girl that feared no shame
nor harm in showing her kindness. That's what I remember. A girl
that made life bearable to a young fool, too proud to recognize his
own limitations, too blind to see the gifts the gods were flinging at
him. Oh, what a fool I was with my silly pride of family, of superior
education and breeding, and with no eye for the pure gold of as true
and loyal a soul as ever offered itself in daily unmurmuring sacrifice
for others, and without a thought of sacrifice. Fool and dolt! A
self-sufficient prig! That's what I remember."
The girl tore her hands away from him.
"Ah, Allan, my boy," she cried with a shrill and scornful laugh
that broke at the end, "how foolishly you talk! And yet I love to
hear you talk so. I love to hear you. But, oh, let me tell you what
else I remember of those days!"
"No, no, I will not listen. It's all nonsense."
"Nonsense! Ah, Allan! Let me tell you this once." She put her
hands upon his shoulders and looked steadily into his eyes. "Let me
tell you. I've never told you once during these six happy months--oh,
how happy, I fear to think how happy, too much joy, too deep, too
wonderful, I'm afraid sometimes--but let me tell you what I see,
looking back into those old days--how far away they seem already and
not yet three years past--I see a lad so strange, so unlike all I had
known, a gallant lad, a very knight for grace and gentleness, strong
and patient and brave, not afraid--ah, that caught me--nothing could
make him afraid, not Perkins, the brutal bully, not big Mack himself.
And this young lad, beating them all in the things men love to do,
running, the hammer--and--and fighting too!--Oh, laddie, laddie, how
often did I hold my hands over my heart for fear it would burst for
pride in you! How often did I check back my tears for very joy of
loving you! How often did I find myself sick with the agony of fear
that you should go away from me forever! And then you went away, oh,
so kindly, so kindly pitiful, your pity stabbing my heart with every
throb. Why do I tell you this to-day? Let me go through it. But it
was this very pity stabbing me that awoke in me the resolve that one
day you would not need to pity me. And then, then I fled from the
farm and all its dreadful surroundings. And the nurse and Dr. Martin,
oh how good they were! And all of them helped me. They taught me.
They scolded me. They were never tired telling me. And with that
flame burning in my soul all that outer, horrid, awful husk seemed to
disappear and I escaped, I became all new."
"You became yourself, yourself, your glorious, splendid, beautiful
self!" shouted Allan, throwing his arms around her. "And then I
found you again. Thank God, I found you! And found you for keeps,
mine forever. Think of that!"
"Forever." Mandy shuddered again. "Oh, Allan, I'm somehow afraid.
This joy is too great."
"Yes, forever," said Allan again, but more quietly, "for love will
last forever."
Together they sat upon the grass, needing no words to speak the joy
that filled their souls to overflowing. Suddenly Mandy sprang to her
feet.
"Now, let me go, for within an hour we must be away. Oh, what a
day we've had, Allan, one of the very best days in all my life! You
know I've never been able to talk of the past to you, but to- day
somehow I could not rest till I had gone through with it all."
"Yes, it's been a great day," said Allan, "a wonderful day, a day
we shall always remember." Then after a silence, "Now for a fire and
supper. You're right. In an hour we must be gone, for we are a long
way from home. But, think of it, Mandy, we're going HOME. I can't
quite get used to that!"
And in an hour, riding close as lovers ride, they took the trail to
their home ten miles away.
When on the return journey they arrived upon the plateau skirting
the Piegan Reserve the sun's rays were falling in shafts of slanting
light upon the rounded hilltops before them and touching with purple
the great peaks behind them. The valleys were full of shadows, deep
and blue. The broad plains that opened here and there between the
rounded hills were still bathed in the mellow light of the westering
sun.
"We will keep out a bit from the Reserve," said Cameron, taking a
trail that led off to the left. "These Piegans are none too
friendly. I've had to deal with them a few times about my straying
steers in a way which they are inclined to resent. This half-breed
business is making them all restless and a good deal too
impertinent."
"There's not any real danger, is there?" inquired his wife. "The
Police can handle them quite well, can't they?"
"If you were a silly hysterical girl, Mandy, I would say 'no
danger' of course. But the signs are ominous. I don't fear anything
immediately, but any moment a change may come and then we shall need
to act quickly."
"What then?"
"We shall ride to the Fort, I can tell you, without waiting to take
our stuff with us. I take no chances now."
"Now? Meaning?"
"Meaning my wife, that's all. I never thought to fear an Indian,
but, by Jove! since I've got you, Mandy, they make me nervous."
"But these Piegans are such--"
"The Piegans are Indians, plain Indians, deprived of the privilege
of war by our North West Mounted Police regulations and of the
excitement of the chase by our ever approaching civilization, and the
younger bloods would undoubtedly welcome a 'bit of a divarshun,' as
your friend Mike would say. At present the Indians are simply
watching and waiting."
"What for?"
"News. To see which way the cat jumps. Then-- Steady, Ginger!
What the deuce! Whoa, I say! Hold hard, Mandy."
"What's the matter with them?"
"There's something in the bushes yonder. Coyote, probably.
Listen!"
There came from a thick clump of poplars a low, moaning cry.
"What's that?" cried Mandy. "It sounds like a man."
"Stay where you are. I'll ride in."
In a few moments she heard his voice calling.
"Come along! Hurry up!"
A young Indian lad of about seventeen, ghastly under his copper
skin and faint from loss of blood, lay with his ankle held in a
powerful wolf-trap, a bloody knife at his side. With a cry Mandy was
off her horse and beside him, the instincts of the trained nurse
rousing her to action.
"Good Heavens! What a mess!" cried Cameron, looking helplessly
upon the bloody and mangled leg.
"Get a pail of water and get a fire going, Allan," she cried.
"Quick!"
"Well, first this trap ought to be taken off, I should say."
"Quite right," she cried. "Hurry!"
Taking his ax from their camp outfit, he cut down a sapling, and,
using it as a lever, soon released the foot.
"How did all this mangling come?" said Mandy, gazing at the limb,
the flesh and skin of which were hanging in shreds about the ankle.
"Cutting it off, weren't you?" said Allan.
The Indian nodded.
Mandy lifted the foot up.
"Broken, I should say."
The Indian uttered not a sound.
"Run," she continued. "Bring a pail of water and get a fire
going."
Allan was soon back with the pail of water.
"Me--water," moaned the Indian, pointing to the pail. Allan held
it to his lips and he drank long and deep. In a short time the fire
was blazing and the tea pail slung over it.
"If I only had my kit here!" said Mandy. "This torn flesh and skin
ought to be all cut away."
"Oh, I say, Mandy, you can't do that. We'll get the Police
doctor!" said Allan in a tone of horrified disgust.
But Mandy was feeling the edge of the Indian's knife.
"Sharp enough," she said to herself. "These ragged edges are just
reeking with poison. Can you stand it if I cut these bits off?" she
said to the Indian.
"Huh!" he replied with a grunt of contempt. "No hurt."
"Mandy, you can't do this! It makes me sick to see you," said her
husband.
The Indian glanced with scorn at him, caught the knife out of
Mandy's hand, took up a flap of lacerated flesh and cut it clean
away.
"Huh! No-t'ing."
Mandy took the knife from him, and, after boiling it for a few
minutes, proceeded to cut away the ragged, mangled flesh and skin.
The Indian never winced. He lay with eyes closed, and so pallid was
his face and so perfectly motionless his limbs that he might have been
dead. With deft hands she cleansed the wounds.
"Now, Allan, you must help me. We must have splints for this
ankle."
"How would birch-bark do?" he suggested.
"No, it's too flimsy."
"The heavy inner rind is fairly stiff." He ran to a tree and
hacked off a piece.
"Yes, that will do splendidly. Get some about so long."
Half an hour's work, and the wounded limb lay cleansed, bandaged,
packed in soft moss and bound in splints.
"That's great, Mandy!" exclaimed her husband. "Even to my
untutored eyes that looks like an artistic bit of work. You're a
wonder."
"Huh!" grunted the Indian. "Good!" His piercing black eyes were
lifted suddenly to her face with such a look of gratitude as is seen
in the eyes of dumb brutes or of men deprived of speech.
"Good!" echoed Allan. "You're just right, my boy. I couldn't have
done it, I assure you."
"Huh!" grunted the Indian in eloquent contempt. "No good,"
pointing to the man. "Good," pointing to the woman. "Me--no--
forget." He lifted himself upon his elbow, and, pointing to the sun
like a red eye glaring in upon them through a vista of woods and
hills," said, "Look--He see--me no forget."
There was something truly Hebraic in the exultant solemnity of his
tone and gesture.
"By Jove! He won't either, I truly believe," said Allan. "You've
made a friend for life, Mandy. Now, what's next? We can't carry
this chap. It's three miles to their camp. We can't leave him here.
There are wolves all around and the brutes always attack anything
wounded."
The Indian solved the problem.
"Huh!" he grunted contemptuously. He took up his long hunting-
knife. "Wolf--this!" He drove the knife to the hilt into the
ground.
"You go--my fadder come. T'ree Indian," holding up three fingers.
"All right! Good!" He sank back upon the ground exhausted.
"Come on then, Mandy, we shall have to hurry."
"No, you go. I'll wait."
"I won't have that. It will be dark soon and I can't leave you
here alone with--"
"Nonsense! This poor boy is faint with hunger and pain. I'll feed
him while you're gone. Get me afresh pail of water and I can do for
myself."
"Well," replied her husband dubiously, "I'll get you some wood
and--"
"Come, now," replied Mandy impatiently, "who taught you to cut
wood? I can get my own wood. The main thing is to get away and get
back. This boy needs shelter. How long have you been here?" she
inquired of the Indian.
The boy opened his eyes and swung his arm twice from east to west,
indicating the whole sweep of the sky.
"Two days?"
He nodded.
"You must be starving. Want to eat?"
"Good!"
"Hurry, then, Allan, with the water. By the time this lad has been
fed you will be back."
It was not long before Allan was back with the water.
"Now, then," he said to the Indian, "where's your camp?"
The Indian with his knife drew a line upon the ground. "River," he
said. Another line parallel, "Trail." Then, tracing a branching
line from the latter, turning sharply to the right, "Big Hill," he
indicated. "Down--down." Then, running the line a little farther,
"Here camp."
"I know the spot," cried Allan. "Well, I'm off. Are you quite
sure, Mandy, you don't mind?"
"Run off with you and get back soon. Go--good-by! Oh! Stop, you
foolish boy! Aren't you ashamed of yourself before--?"
Cameron laughed in happy derision.
"Ashamed? No, nor before his whole tribe." He swung himself on
his pony and was off down the trail at a gallop.
"You' man?" inquired the Indian lad.
"Yes," she said, "my man," pride ringing in her voice.
"Huh! Him Big Chief?"
"Oh, no! Yes." She corrected herself hastily. "Big Chief.
Ranch, you know--Big Horn Ranch."
"Huh!" He closed his eyes and sank back again upon the ground.
"You're faint with hunger, poor boy," said Mandy. She hastily cut
a large slice of bread, buttered it, laid upon it some bacon and
handed it to him.
"Here, take this in the meantime," she said. "I'll have your tea
in a jiffy."
The boy took the bread, and, faint though he was with hunger,
sternly repressing all sign of haste, he ate it with grave
deliberation.
In a few minutes more the tea was ready and Mandy brought him a
cup.
"Good!" he said, drinking it slowly.
"Another?" she smiled.
"Good!" he replied, drinking the second cup more rapidly.
"Now, we'll have some fish," cried Mandy cheerily, "and then you'll
be fit for your journey home."
In twenty minutes more she brought him a frying pan in which two
large beautiful trout lay, browned in butter. Mandy caught the
wolf-like look in his eyes as they fell upon the food. She cut
several thick slices of bread, laid them in the pan with the fish and
turned her back upon him. The Indian seized the bread, and, noting
that he was unobserved, tore it apart like a dog and ate ravenously,
the fish likewise, ripping the flesh off the bones and devouring it
like some wild beast.
"There, now," she said, when he had finished, "you've had enough to
keep you going. Indeed, you have had all that's good for you. We
don't want any fever, so that will do."
Her gestures, if not her words, he understood, and again as he
watched her there gleamed in his eyes that dumb animal look of
gratitude.
"Huh!" he grunted, slapping himself on the chest and arms. "Good!
Me strong! Me sleep." He lay back upon the ground and in half a
dozen breaths was dead asleep, leaving Mandy to her lonely watch in
the gathering gloom of the falling night.
The silence of the woods deepened into a stillness so profound that
a dead leaf, fluttering from its twig and rustling to the ground,
made her start in quick apprehension.
"What a fool I am!" she muttered angrily. She rose to pile wood
upon the fire. At her first movement the Indian was broad awake and
half on his knees with his knife gleaming in his hand. As his eyes
fell upon the girl at the fire, with a grunt, half of pain and half of
contempt, he sank back again upon the ground and was fast asleep
before the fire was mended, leaving Mandy once more to her lonely
watch.
"I wish he would come," she muttered, peering into the darkening
woods about her. A long and distant howl seemed to reply to her
remark.
It was answered by a series of short, sharp yelps nearer at hand.
"Coyote," she said disdainfully, for she had learned to despise the
cowardly prairie wolf.
But again that long distant howl. In spite of herself she
shuddered. That was no coyote, but a gray timber wolf.
"I wish Allan would come," she said again, thinking of wakening the
Indian. But her nurse's instincts forbade her breaking his heavy
sleep.
"Poor boy, he needs the rest! I'll wait a while longer."
She took her ax and went bravely at some dead wood lying near,
cutting it for the fire. The Indian never made a sound. He lay dead
in sleep. She piled the wood on the fire till the flames leaped high,
shining ruddily upon the golden and yellow leaves of the surrounding
trees.
But again that long-drawn howl, and quite near, pierced the silence
like the thrust of a spear. Before she was aware Mandy was on her
feet, determined to waken the sleeping Indian, but she had no more
than taken a single step toward him when he was awake and listening
keenly. A soft padding upon the dead leaves could be heard like the
gentle falling of raindrops. The Indian rolled over on his side,
swept away some dead leaves and moss, and drew toward him a fine
Winchester rifle.
"Huh! Wolf," he said, with quiet unconcern. "Here," he continued,
pointing to a rock beside him. Mandy took the place indicated. As
she seated herself he put up his hand with a sharp hiss. Again the
pattering feet could be heard. Suddenly the Indian leaned forward,
gazing intently into the gloom beyond the rim of the firelight, then
with a swift gliding movement he threw his rifle up and fired. There
was a sharp yelp, followed by a gurgling snarl. His shot was answered
by a loud shout.
"Huh!" said the lad with quiet satisfaction, holding up one finger,
"One wolf. Big Chief come."
At the shout Mandy had sprung to her feet, answering with a loud
glad halloo. Immediately, as if in response to her call, an Indian
swung his pony into the firelight, slipped off and stood looking
about him. Straight, tall and sinewy, he stood, with something noble
in his face and bearing.
"He looks like a gentleman," was the thought that leaped into
Mandy's mind. A swift glance he swept round the circle of the light.
Mandy thought she had never seen so piercing an eye.
The Indian lad uttered a low moaning sound. With a single leap the
man was at his side, holding him in his arms and kissing him on both
cheeks, with eager guttural speech. A few words from the lad and the
Indian was on his feet again, his eyes gleaming, but his face immobile
as a death mask.
"My boy," he said, pointing to the lad. "My boy--my papoose." His
voice grew soft and tender.
Before Mandy could reply there was another shout and Allan,
followed by four Indians, burst into the light. With a glad cry
Mandy rushed into his arms and clung to him.
"Hello! What's up? Everything all right?" cried Allan. "I was a
deuce of a time, I know. Took the wrong trail. You weren't
frightened, eh? What? What's happened?" His voice grew anxious,
then stern. "Anything wrong? Did he--? Did anyone--?"
"No, no, Allan!" cried his wife, still clinging to him. "It was
only a wolf and I was a little frightened."
"A wolf!" echoed her husband aghast.
The Indian lad spoke a few words and pointed to the dark. The
Indians glided into the woods and in a few minutes one of them
returned, dragging by the leg a big, gray timber wolf. The lad's
bullet had gone home.
"And did this brute attack you?" cried Allan in alarm.
"No, no. I heard him howling a long way off, and then--then--he
came nearer, and--then--I could hear his feet pattering." Cameron
drew her close to him. "And then he saw him right in the dark.
Wasn't it wonderful?"
"In the dark?" said Allan, turning to the lad. "How did you do
it?"
"Huh!" grunted the lad in a tone of indifference. "See him eyes."
Already the Indians were preparing a stretcher out of blankets and
two saplings. Here Mandy came to their help, directing their efforts
so that with the least hurt to the boy he was lifted to his stretcher.
As they were departing the father came close to Mandy, and, holding
out his hand, said in fairly good English:
"You--good to my boy. You save him--to-day. All alone maybe he
die. You give him food--drink. Sometime--perhaps soon--me pay you."
"Oh," cried Mandy, "I want no pay."
"No money--no!" cried the Indian, with scorn in his voice. "Me
save you perhaps--sometime. Save you--save you, man. Me Big Chief."
He drew himself up his full height. "Much Indian follow me." He
shook hands with Mandy again, then with her husband.
"Big Piegan Chief?" inquired her husband.
"Piegan!" said the Indian with hearty contempt. "Me no Piegan--me
Big Chief. Me--" He paused abruptly, turned on his heel and,
flinging himself on to his pony, disappeared in the shadows.
"He's jolly well pleased with himself, isn't he?" said Cameron.
"He's splendid," cried Mandy enthusiastically. "Why, he's just
like one of Cooper's Indians. He's certainly like none of the rest
I've seen about here."
"That's true enough," replied her husband. "He's no Piegan. Who
is he, I wonder? I don't remember seeing him. He thinks no end of
himself, at any rate."
"And looks as if he had a right to."
"Right you are! Well, let's away. You must be dog tired and used
up."
"Never a bit," cried Mandy. "I'm fresh as a daisy. What a
wonderful ending to a wonderful day!"
They extinguished the fire carefully and made their way out to the
trail.
But the end of this wonderful day had not yet come.
The moon was riding high in the cloudless blue of the heavens,
tricked out with faintly shining stars, when they rode into the
"corral" that surrounded the ranch stable. A horse stood tethered at
the gate.
"Hello, a visitor!" cried Cameron. "A Police horse!" his eyes
falling upon the shining accouterments.
"A Policeman!" echoed Mandy, a sudden foreboding at her heart.
"What can he want?"
"Me, likely," replied her husband with a laugh, "though I can't
think for which of my crimes it is. It's Inspector Dickson, by his
horse. You know him, Mandy, my very best friend."
"What does he want, Allan?" said Mandy, anxiety in her voice.
"Want? Any one of a thousand things. You run in and see while I
put up the ponies."
"I don't like it," said Mandy, walking with him toward the stable.
"Do you know, I feel there is something--I have felt all day a kind
of dread that--"
"Nonsense, Mandy! You're not that style of girl. Run away into
the house."
But still Mandy waited beside him.
"We've had a great day, Allan," she said again. "Many great days,
and this, one of the best. Whatever comes nothing can take those
happy days from us." She put her arms about his neck and drew him
toward her. "I don't know why, Allan, I know it's foolish, but I'm
afraid," she whispered, "I'm afraid."
"Now, Mandy," said her husband, with his arms round about her,
"don't say you're going to get like other girls, hysterical and that
sort of thing. You are just over-tired. We've had a big day, but an
exhausting day, an exciting day. What with that Piegan and the wolf
business and all, you are done right up. So am I and--by Jove! That
reminds me, I am dead famished."
No better word could he have spoken.
"You poor boy," she cried. "I'll have supper ready by the time you
come in. I am silly, but now it's all over. I shall go in and face
the Inspector and dare him to arrest you, no matter what you have
done."
"That's more like the thing! That's more like my girl. I shall be
with you in a very few minutes. He can't take us both, can he? Run
in and smile at him."
Mandy found the Inspector in the cozy ranch kitchen, calmly smoking
his pipe, and deep in the London Graphic. As she touched the latch
he sprang to his feet and saluted in his best style.
"Never heard you ride up, Mrs. Cameron, I assure you. You must
think me rather cool to sit tight here and ignore your coming."
"I am very glad to see you, Inspector Dickson, and Allan will be
delighted. He is putting up your horse. You will of course stay the
night with us."
"Oh, that's awfully kind, but I really can't, you know. I shall
tell Cameron." He took his hat from the peg.
"We should be delighted if you could stay with us. We see very few
people and you have not been very neighborly, now confess."
"I have not been, and to my sorrow and loss. If any man had told
me that I should have been just five weeks to a day within a few
hours' ride of my friend Cameron, not to speak of his charming wife,
without visiting him, well I should have--well, no matter--to my joy I
am here to-night. But I can't stay this trip. We are rather hard
worked just now, to tell the truth."
"Hard worked?" she asked.
"Yes. Patrol work rather heavy. But I must stop Cameron in his
hospitable design," he added, as he passed out of the door.
It was a full half hour before the men returned, to find supper
spread and Mandy waiting. It was a large and cheerful apartment that
did both for kitchen and living room. The sides were made of logs
hewn smooth, plastered and whitewashed. The oak joists and planking
above were stained brown. At one end of the kitchen two doors led to
as many rooms, at the other a large stone fireplace, with a great slab
for mantelpiece. On this slab stood bits of china bric-a-brac, and
what not, relics abandoned by the gallant and chivalrous Fraser for
the bride and her house furnishing. The prints, too, upon the wall,
hunting scenes of the old land, sea- scenes, moorland and wild cattle,
with many useful and ornamental bits of furniture, had all been handed
over with true Highland generosity by the outgoing owner.
In the fireplace, for the night had a touch of frost in it, a log
fire blazed and sparked, lending to the whole scene an altogether
delightful air of comfort.
"I say, this does look jolly!" cried the Inspector as he entered.
"Cameron, you lucky dog, do you really imagine you know how jolly
well off you are, coddled thus in the lap of comfort and surrounded
with all the enervating luxuries of an effete and forgotten
civilization? Come now, own up, you are beginning to take this thing
as a matter of course."
But Cameron stood with his back to the light, busying himself with
his fishing tackle and fish, and ignoring the Inspector's cheerful
chatter. And thus he remained without a word while the Inspector
talked on in a voluble flow of small talk quite unusual with him.
Throughout the supper Cameron remained silent, rallying
spasmodically with gay banter to the Inspector's chatter, or
answering at random, but always falling silent again, and altogether
was so unlike himself that Mandy fell to wondering, then became
watchful, then anxious. At length the Inspector himself fell silent,
as if perceiving the uselessness of further pretense.
"What is it, Allan?" said Mandy quietly, when silence had fallen
upon them all. "You might as well let me know."
"Tell her, for God's sake," said her husband to the Inspector.
"What is it?" inquired Mandy.
The Inspector handed her a letter.
"From Superintendent Strong to my Chief," he said.
She took it and as she read her face went now white with fear, now
red with indignation. At length she flung the letter down.
"What a man he is to be sure!" she cried scornfully. "And what
nonsense is this he writes. With all his men and officers he must
come for my husband! What is HE doing? And all the others? It's
just his own stupid stubbornness. He always did object to our
marriage."
The Inspector was silent. Cameron was silent too. His boyish
face, for he was but a lad, seemed to have grown old in those few
minutes. The Inspector wore an ashamed look, as if detected in a
crime.
"And because he is not clever enough to catch this man they must
come for my husband to do it for them. He is not a Policeman. He
has nothing to do with the Force."
And still the Inspector sat silent, as if convicted of both crime
and folly.
At length Cameron spoke.
"It is quite impossible, Inspector. I can't do it. You quite see
how impossible it is."
"Most certainly you can't," eagerly agreed the Inspector. "I knew
from the first it was a piece of--sheer absurdity--in fact brutal
inhumanity. I told the Commissioner so."
"It isn't as if I was really needed, you know. The
Superintendent's idea is, as you say, quite absurd."
The Inspector gravely nodded.
"You don't think for a moment," continued Cameron, "there is any
need--any real need I mean--for me to--" Cameron's voice died away.
The Inspector hesitated and cleared his throat. "Well--of course,
we are desperately short-handed, you know. Every man is overworked.
Every reserve has to be closely patroled. Every trail ought to be
watched. Runners are coming in every day. We ought to have a
thousand men instead of five hundred, this very minute. Of course
one can never tell. The chances are this will all blow over."
"Certainly," said Cameron. "We've heard these rumors for the past
year."
"Of course," agreed the Inspector cheerfully.
"But if it does not," asked Mandy, suddenly facing the Inspector,
"what then?"
"If it does not?"
"If it does not?" she insisted.
The Inspector appeared to turn the matter over in his mind.
"Well," he said slowly and thoughtfully, "if it does not there will
be a deuce of an ugly time."
"What do you mean?"
The Inspector shrugged his shoulders. But Mandy waited, her eyes
fixed on his face demanding answer.
"Well, there are some hundreds of settlers and their families
scattered over this country, and we can hardly protect them all.
But," he added cheerfully, as if dismissing the subject, "we have a
trick of worrying through."
Mandy shuddered. One phrase in the Superintendent's letter to the
Commissioner which she had just read kept hammering upon her brain,
"Cameron is the man and the only man for the job."
They turned the talk to other things, but the subject would not be
dismissed. Like the ghost at the feast it kept ever returning. The
Inspector retailed the most recent rumors, and together he and his
host weighed their worth. The Inspector disclosed the Commissioner's
plans as far as he knew them. These, too, were discussed with
approval or condemnation. The consequences of an Indian uprising were
hinted at, but quickly dropped. The probabilities of such an uprising
were touched upon and pronounced somewhat slight.
But somehow to the woman listening as in a maze this pronouncement
and all the reassuring talk rang hollow. She sat staring at the
Inspector with eyes that saw him not. What she did see was a picture
out of an old book of Indian war days which she had read when a child,
a smoking cabin, with mangled forms of women and children lying in the
blackened embers. By degrees, slow, painful, but relentlessly
progressive, certain impressions, at first vague and passionately
resisted, were wrought into convictions in her soul. First, the
Inspector, in spite of his light talk, was undeniably anxious, and in
this anxiety her husband shared. Then, the Force was clearly
inadequate to the duty required of it. At this her indignation
burned. Why should it be that a Government should ask of brave men
what they must know to be impossible? Hard upon this conviction came
the words of the Superintendent, "Cameron is the man and the only man
for the job." Finally, the Inspector was apologizing for her husband.
It roused a hot resentment in her to hear him. That thing she could
not and would not bear. Never should it be said that her husband had
needed a friend to apologize for him.
As these convictions grew in clearness she found herself brought
suddenly and sharply to face the issue. With a swift contraction of
the heart she realized that she must send her husband on this perilous
duty. Ah! Could she do it? It was as if a cold hand were steadily
squeezing drop by drop the life-blood from her heart. In contrast, and
as if with one flash of light, the long happy days of the last six
months passed before her mind. How could she give him up? Her
breathing came in short gasps, her lips became dry, her eyes fixed and
staring. She was fighting for what was dearer to her than life.
Suddenly she flung her hands to her face and groaned aloud.
"What is it, Mandy?" cried her husband, starting from his place.
His words seemed to recall her. The agonizing agitation passed
from her and a great quiet fell upon her soul. The struggle was
done. She had made the ancient sacrifice demanded of women since
ever the first man went forth to war. It remained only to complete
with fitting ritual this ancient sacrifice. She rose from her seat
and faced her husband.
"Allan," she said, and her voice was of indescribable sweetness,
"you must go."
Her husband took her in his arms without a word, then brokenly he
said:
"My girl! My own brave girl! I knew you must send me."
"Yes," she replied, gazing into his face with a wan smile, "I knew
it too, because I knew you would expect me to."
The Inspector had risen from his chair at her first cry and was
standing with bent head, as if in the presence of a scene too sacred
to witness. Then he came to her, and, with old time and courtly grace
of the fine gentleman he was, he took her hand and raised it to his
lips.
"Dear lady," he said, "for such as you brave men would gladly give
their lives."
"Give their lives!" cried Mandy. "I would much rather they would
save them. But," she added, her voice taking a practical tone, "sit
down and let us talk. Now what's the work and what's the plan?"
The men glanced at each other in silent admiration of this woman
who, without moan or murmur, could surrender her heart's dearest
treasure for her country's good. This was a spirit of their own
type.
They sat down before the fire and discussed the business before
them. But as they discussed ever and again Mandy would find her mind
wandering back over the past happy days. Ever and again a word would
recall her, but only for a brief moment and soon she was far away
again.
A phrase of the Inspector, however, arrested and held her.
"He's really a fine looking Indian, in short a kind of aristocrat
among the Indians," he was saying.
"An aristocrat?" she exclaimed, remembering her own word about the
Indian Chief they had met that very evening. "Why, that is like our
Chief, Allan."
"By Jove! You're right!" exclaimed her husband. "What's your man
like, again? Describe him, Inspector."
The Inspector described him in detail.
"The very man we saw to-night!" cried Mandy, and gave her
description of the "Big Chief."
When she had finished the Inspector sat looking into the fire.
"Among the Piegans, too," he mused. "That fits in. There was a
big powwow the other day in the Sun Dance Canyon. The Piegans' is
the nearest reserve, and a lot of them were there. The
Superintendent says he is somewhere along the Sun Dance."
"Inspector," said Allan, with sudden determination, "we will drop
in on the Piegans to-morrow morning by sun-up."
Mandy started. This pace was more rapid than she had expected,
but, having made the sacrifice, there was with her no word of recall.
The Inspector pondered the suggestion.
"Well," he said, "it would do no harm to reconnoiter at any rate.
But we can't afford to make any false move, and we can't afford to
fail."
"Fail!" said Cameron quietly. "We won't fail. We'll get him."
And the lines in his face reminded his wife of how he looked that
night three years before when he cowed the great bully Perkins into
submission at her father's door.
Long they sat and planned. As the Inspector said, there must be no
failure; hence the plan must provide for every possible contingency.
By far the keenest of the three in mental activity was Mandy. By a
curious psychological process the Indian Chief, who an hour before
had awakened in her admiration and a certain romantic interest, had
in a single moment become an object of loathing, almost of hatred.
That he should be in this land planning for her people, for innocent
and defenseless women and children, the horrors of massacre filled
her with a fierce anger. But a deeper analysis would doubtless have
revealed a personal element in her anger and loathing. The Indian
had become the enemy for whose capture and for whose destruction her
husband was now enlisted. Deep down in her quiet, strong,
self-controlled nature there burned a passion in which mingled the
primitive animal instincts of the female, mate for mate, and mother
for offspring. Already her mind had leaped forward to the moment
when this cunning, powerful plotter would be at death-grips with her
husband and she not there to help. With intensity of purpose and
relentlessness of determination she focused the powers of her
forceful and practical mind upon the problem engaging their thought.
With mind whetted to its keenest she listened to the men as they
made and unmade their plans. In ordinary circumstances the procedure
of arrest would have been extremely simple. The Inspector and Cameron
would have ridden into the Piegan camp, and, demanding their man,
would have quietly and without even a show of violence carried him
off. It would have been like things they had each of them done
single-handed within the past year.
"When once we make a start, you see, Mrs. Cameron, we never turn
back. We could not afford to," said the Inspector. There was no
suspicion of boasting in the Inspector's voice. He was simply
enunciating the traditional code of the Police. "And if we should
hesitate with this man or fail to land him every Indian in these
territories would have it within a week and our prestige would
receive a shock. We dare not exhibit any sign of nerves. On the
other hand we dare not make any movement in force. In short,
anything unusual must be avoided."
"I quite see," replied Mandy with keen appreciation of the delicacy
of the situation.
"So that I fancy the simpler the plan the better. Cameron will
ride into the Piegan camp inquiring about his cattle, as, fortunately
for the present situation, he has cause enough to in quite an ordinary
way. I drop in on my regular patrol looking up a cattle-thief in
quite the ordinary way. Seeing this strange chief, I arrest him on
suspicion. Cameron backs me up. The thing is done. Luckily Trotting
Wolf, who is the Head Chief now of the Piegans, has a fairly thorough
respect for the Police, and unless things have gone much farther in
his band than I think he will not resist. He is, after all, rather
harmless."
"I don't like your plan at all, Inspector," said Mandy promptly.
"The moment you suggest arrest that moment the younger men will be
up. They are just back from a big brave-making powwow, you say. They
are all worked up, and keen for a chance to prove that they are braves
in more than in name. You give them the very opportunity you wish to
avoid. Now hear my plan," she continued, her voice eager, keen, hard,
in the intensity of her purpose. "I ride into camp to-morrow morning
to see the sick boy. I promised I would and I really want to. I find
him in a fever, for a fever he certainly will have. I dress his
wounded ankle and discover he must have some medicine. I get old
Copperhead to ride back with me for it. You wait here and arrest him
without trouble."
The two men looked at each other, then at her, with a gentle
admiring pity. The plan was simplicity itself and undoubtedly
eliminated the elements of danger which the Inspector's possessed. It
had, however, one fatal defect.
"Fine, Mandy!" said her husband, reaching across the table and
patting her hand that lay clenched upon the cloth. "But it won't
do."
"And why not, pray?" she demanded.
"We do not use our women as decoys in this country, nor do we
expose them to dangers we men dare not face."
"Allan," cried his wife with angry impatience, "you miss the whole
point. For a woman to ride into the Piegan camp, especially on this
errand of mercy, involves her in no danger. And what possible danger
would there be in having the old villain ride back with me for
medicine? And as to the decoy business," here she shrugged her
shoulders contemptuously, "do you think I care a bit for that? Isn't
he planning to kill women and children in this country? And--
and--won't he do his best to kill you?" she panted. "Isn't it right
for me to prevent him? Prevent him! To me he is like a snake. I
would--would--gladly kill him--myself." As she spoke these words her
eyes were indeed, in Sergeant Ferry's words, "like little blue
flames."
But the men remained utterly unmoved. To their manhood the plan
was repugnant, and in spite of Mandy's arguments and entreaties was
rejected.
"It is the better plan, Mrs. Cameron," said the Inspector kindly,
"but we cannot, you must see we cannot, adopt it."
"You mean you will not," cried Mandy indignantly, "just because you
are stupid stubborn men!" And she proceeded to argue the matter all
over again with convincing logic, but with the same result. There are
propositions which do not lend themselves to the arbitrament of logic
with men. When the safety of their women is at stake they refuse to
discuss chances. In such a case they may be stupid, but they are
quite immovable.
Blocked by this immovable stupidity, Mandy yielded her ground, but
only to attempt a flank movement.
"Let me go with you on your reconnoitering expedition," she
pleaded. "Rather, let US go, Allan, you and I together, to see the
boy. I am really sorry for that boy. He can't help his father, can
he?"
"Quite true," said the Inspector gravely.
"Let us go and find out all we can and next day make your attempt.
Besides, Allan," she cried under a sudden inspiration of memory, "you
can't possibly go. You forget your sister arrives at Calgary this
week. You must meet her."
"By Jove! Is that so? I had forgotten," said Cameron, turning to
study the calendar on the wall, a gorgeous work of art produced out
of the surplus revenues of a Life Insurance Company. "Let's see," he
calculated. "This week? Three days will take us in. We are still
all right. We have five. That gives us two days clear for this job.
I feel like making this try, Mandy," he continued earnestly. "We
have this chap practically within our grasp. He will be off guard.
The Piegans are not yet worked up to the point of resistance. Ten
days from now our man may be we can't tell where."
Mandy remained silent. The ritual of her sacrifice was not yet
complete.
"I think you are right, Allan," at length she said slowly with a
twisted smile. "I'm afraid you are right. It's hard not to be in
it, though. But," she added, as if moved by a sudden thought, "I may
be in it yet."
"You will certainly be with us in spirit, Mandy," he replied,
patting the firm brown hand that lay upon the table.
"Yes, truly, and in our hearts," added the Inspector with a bow.
But Mandy made no reply. Already she was turning over in her mind
a half-formed plan which she had no intention of sharing with these
men, who, after the manner of their kind, would doubtless block it.
Early morning found Cameron and the Inspector on the trail toward
the Piegan Reserve, riding easily, for they knew not what lay before
them nor what demand they might have to make upon their horses that
day. The Inspector rode a strongly built, stocky horse of no great
speed but good for an all-day run. Cameron's horse was a broncho, an
unlovely brute, awkward and ginger-colored--his name was
Ginger--sad-eyed and wicked-looking, but short-coupled and with flat,
rangy legs that promised speed. For his sad-eyed, awkward broncho
Cameron professed a deep affection and defended him stoutly against
the Inspector's jibes.
"You can't kill him," he declared. "He'll go till he drops, and
then twelve miles more. He isn't beautiful to look at and his
manners are nothing to boast of, but he will hang upon the fence the
handsome skin of that cob of yours."
When still five or six miles from camp they separated.
"The old boy may, of course, be gone," said the Inspector as he was
parting from his friend. "By Superintendent Strong's report he seems
to be continually on the move."
"I rather think his son will hold him for a day or two," replied
Cameron. "Now you give me a full half hour. I shall look in upon
the boy, you know. But don't be longer. I don't as a rule linger
among these Piegan gentry, you know, and a lengthened stay would
certainly arouse suspicion."
Cameron's way lay along the high plateau, from which a descent
could be made by a trail leading straight south into the Piegan camp.
The Inspector's course carried him in a long detour to the left, by
which he should enter from the eastern end the valley in which lay the
Indian camp. Cameron's trail at the first took him through thick
timber, then, as it approached the level floor of the valley, through
country that became more open. The trees were larger and with less
undergrowth between them. In the valley itself a few stubble fields
with fences sadly in need of repair gave evidence of the partial
success of the attempts of the farm instructor to initiate the Piegans
into the science and art of agriculture. A few scattering log houses,
which the Indians had been induced by the Government to build for
themselves, could be seen here and there among the trees. But during
the long summer days, and indeed until driven from the open by the
blizzards of winter, not one of these children of the free air and
open sky could be persuaded to enter the dismal shelter afforded by
the log houses. They much preferred the flimsy teepee or tent. And
small wonder. Their methods of sanitation did not comport with a
permanent dwelling. When the teepee grew foul, which their habits
made inevitable, a simple and satisfactory remedy was discovered in a
shift to another camp-ground. Not so with the log houses, whose foul
corners, littered with the accumulated filth of a winter's occupation,
became fertile breeding places for the germs of disease and death.
Irregularly strewn upon the grassy plain in the valley bottom some
two dozen teepees marked the Piegan summer headquarters. Above the
camp rose the smoke of their camp-fires, for it was still early and
their morning meal was yet in preparation.
Cameron's approach to the Piegan camp was greeted by a discordant
chorus of yelps and howls from a pack of mangy, half-starved curs of
all breeds, shapes and sizes, the invariable and inevitable
concomitants of an Indian encampment. The squaws, who had been busy
superintending the pots and pans in which simmered the morning meal of
their lords and masters, faded from view at Cameron's approach, and
from the teepees on every side men appeared and stood awaiting with
stolid faces the white man's greeting. Cameron was known to them of
old.
"Good-day!" he cried briefly, singling out the Chief.
"Huh!" replied the Chief, and awaited further parley.
"No grub yet, eh? You sleep too long, Chief."
The Chief smiled grimly.
"I say, Chief," continued Cameron, "I have lost a couple of
steers-- big fellows, too--any of your fellows seen them?"
Trotting Wolf turned to the group of Indians who had slouched
toward them in the meantime and spoke to them in the singsong
monotone of the Indian.
"No see cow," he replied briefly.
Cameron threw himself from his horse and, striding to a large pot
simmering over a fire, stuck his knife into the mass and lifted up a
large piece of flesh, the bones of which looked uncommonly like ribs
of beef.
"What's this, Trotting Wolf?" he inquired with a stern ring in his
voice.
"Deer," promptly and curtly replied the Chief.
"Who shot him?"
The Chief consulted the group of Indians standing near.
"This man," he replied, indicating a young Indian.
"What's your name?" said Cameron sharply. "I know you."
The young Indian shook his head.
"Oh, come now, you know English all right. What's your name?"
Still the Indian shook his head, meeting Cameron's look with a
fearless eye.
"He White Cloud," said the Chief.
"White Cloud! Big Chief, eh?" said Cameron.
"Huh!" replied Trotting Wolf, while a smile appeared on several
faces.
"You shot this deer?"
"Huh!" replied the Indian, nodding.
"I thought you could speak English all right."
Again a smile touched the faces of some of the group.
"Where did you shoot him?"
White Cloud pointed vaguely toward the mountains.
"How far? Two, three, four miles?" inquired Cameron, holding up
his fingers.
"Huh!" grunted the Indian, holding up five fingers.
"Five miles, eh? Big deer, too," said Cameron, pointing to the
ribs.
"Huh!"
"How did you carry him home?"
The Indian shook his head.
"How did he carry him these five miles?" continued Cameron, turning
to Trotting Wolf.
"Pony," replied Trotting Wolf curtly.
"Good!" said Cameron. "Now," said he, turning swiftly upon the
young Indian, "where is the skin?"
The Indian's eyes wavered for a fleeting instant. He spoke a few
words to Trotting Wolf. Conversation followed.
"Well?" said Cameron.
"He says dogs eat him up."
"And the head? This big fellow had a big head. Where is it?"
Again the Indian's eyes wavered and again the conversation
followed.
"Left him up in bush," replied the chief.
"We will ride up and see it, then," said Cameron.
The Indians became voluble among themselves.
"No find," said the Chief. "Wolf eat him up."
Cameron raised the meat to his nose, sniffed its odor and dropped
it back into the pot. With a single stride he was close to White
Cloud.
"White Cloud," he said sternly, "you speak with a forked tongue.
In plain English, White Cloud, you lie. Trotting Wolf, you know that
is no deer. That is cow. That is my cow."
Trotting Wolf shrugged his shoulders.
"No see cow me," he said sullenly.
"White Cloud," said Cameron, swiftly turning again upon the young
Indian, "where did you shoot my cow?"
The young Indian stared back at Cameron, never blinking an eyelid.
Cameron felt his wrath rising, but kept himself well in hand,
remembering the purpose of his visit. During this conversation he
had been searching the gathering crowd of Indians for the tall form
of his friend of the previous night, but he was nowhere to be seen.
Cameron felt he must continue the conversation, and, raising his
voice as if in anger--and indeed there was no need of pretense for he
longed to seize White Cloud by the throat and shake the truth out of
him--he said:
"Trotting Wolf, your young men have been killing my cattle for many
days. You know that this is a serious offense with the Police.
Indians go to jail for this. And the Police will hold you
responsible. You are the Chief on this reserve. The Police will ask
why you cannot keep your young men from stealing cattle."
The number of Indians was increasing every moment and still
Cameron's eyes searched the group, but in vain. Murmurs arose from
the Indians, which he easily interpreted to mean resentment, but he
paid no heed.
"The Police do not want a Chief," he cried in a still louder voice,
"who cannot control his young men and keep them from breaking the
law."
He paused abruptly. From behind a teepee some distance away there
appeared the figure of the "Big Chief" whom he so greatly desired to
see. Giving no sign of his discovery, he continued his exhortation to
Trotting Wolf, to that worthy's mingled rage and embarrassment. The
suggestion of jail for cattle-thieves the Chief knew well was no empty
threat, for two of his band even at that moment were in prison for
this very crime. This knowledge rendered him uneasy. He had no
desire himself to undergo a like experience, and it irked his tribe
and made them restless and impatient of his control that their Chief
could not protect them from these unhappy consequences of their
misdeeds. They knew that with old Crowfoot, the Chief of the
Blackfeet band, such untoward consequences rarely befell the members
of that tribe. Already Trotting Wolf could distinguish the murmurs of
his young men, who were resenting the charge against White Cloud, as
well as the tone and manner in which it was delivered. Most gladly
would he have defied this truculent rancher to do his worst, but his
courage was not equal to the plunge, and, besides, the circumstances
for such a break were not yet favorable.
At this juncture Cameron, facing about, saw within a few feet of
him the Indian whose capture he was enlisted to secure.
"Hello!" he cried, as if suddenly recognizing him. "How is the
boy?"
"Good," said the Indian with grave dignity. "He sick here,"
touching his head.
"Ah! Fever, I suppose," replied Cameron. "Take me to see him."
The Indian led the way to the teepee that stood slightly apart from
the others.
Inside the teepee upon some skins and blankets lay the boy, whose
bright eyes and flushed cheeks proclaimed fever. An old squaw, bent
in form and wrinkled in face, crouched at the end of the couch, her
eyes gleaming like beads of black glass in her mahogany face.
"How is the foot to-day?" cried Allan. "Pain bad?"
"Huh!" grunted the lad, and remained perfectly motionless but for
the restless glittering eyes that followed every movement of his
father.
"You want the doctor here," said Cameron in a serious tone,
kneeling beside the couch. "That boy is in a high fever. And you
can't get him too quick. Better send a boy to the Fort and get the
Police doctor. How did you sleep last night?" he inquired of the
lad.
"No sleep," said his father. "Go this way--this way," throwing his
arms about his head. "Talk, talk, talk."
But Cameron was not listening to him. He was hearing a jingle of
spurs and bridle from down the trail and he knew that the Inspector
had arrived. The old Indian, too, had caught the sound. His
piercing eyes swiftly searched the face of the white man beside him.
But Cameron, glancing quietly at him, continued to discuss the
condition of the boy.
"Yes, you must get the doctor here at once. There is danger of
blood-poisoning. The boy may lose his foot." And he continued to
describe the gruesome possibilities of neglect of that lacerated
wound. As he rose from the couch the boy caught his arm.
"You' squaw good. Come see me," he said. "Good--good." The eager
look in the fevered eye touched Cameron.
"All right, boy, I shall tell her," he said. "Good-by!" He took
the boy's hand in his. But the boy held it fast in a nervous grasp.
"You' squaw come--sure. Hurt here--bad." He struck his forehead
with his hand. "You' squaw come--make good."
"All right," said Cameron. "I shall bring her myself. Good-by!"
Together they passed out of the teepee, Cameron keeping close to
the Indian's side and talking to him loudly and earnestly about the
boy's condition, all the while listening to the Inspector's voice
from behind the row of teepees.
"Ah!" he exclaimed aloud as they came in sight of the Inspector
mounted on his horse. "Here is my friend, Inspector Dickson. Hello,
Inspector!" he called out. "Come over here. We have a sick boy and I
want you to help us."
"Hello, Cameron!" cried the Inspector, riding up and dismounting.
"What's up?"
Trotting Wolf and the other Indians slowly drew near.
"There is a sick boy in here," said Cameron, pointing to the teepee
behind him. "He is the son of this man, Chief--" He paused. "I
don't know your name."
Without an instant's hesitation the Indian replied:
"Chief Onawata."
"His boy got his foot in a trap. My wife dressed the wound last
night," continued Cameron. "Come in and see him."
But the Indian put up his hand.
"No," he said quietly. "My boy not like strange man. Bad head--
here. Want sleep--sleep."
"Ah!" said the Inspector. "Quite right. Let him sleep. Nothing
better than sleep. A good long sleep will fix him up."
"He needs the doctor, however," said Cameron.
"Ah, yes, yes. Well, we shall send the doctor."
"Everything all right, Inspector?" said Cameron, throwing his
friend a significant glance.
"Quite right!" replied the Inspector. "But I must be going. Good-
by, Chief!" As his one hand closed on the Indian's his other slid
down upon his wrist. "I want you, Chief," he said in a quiet stern
voice. "I want you to come along with me."
His hand had hardly closed upon the wrist than with a single
motion, swift, snake-like, the Indian wrenched his hand from the
Inspector's iron grasp and, leaping back a space of three paces,
stood with body poised as if to spring.
"Halt there, Chief! Don't move or you die!"
The Indian turned to see Cameron covering him with two guns. At
once he relaxed his tense attitude and, drawing himself up, he
demanded in a voice of indignant scorn:
"Why you touch me? Me Big Chief! You little dog!"
As he stood, erect, tall, scornful, commanding, with his head
thrown back and his arm outstretched, his eyes glittering and his
face eloquent of haughty pride, he seemed the very incarnation of the
wild unconquered spirit of that once proud race he represented. For a
moment or two a deep silence held the group of Indians, and even the
white men were impressed. Then the Inspector spoke.
"Trotting Wolf," he said, "I want this man. He is a horse-thief.
I know him. I am going to take him to the Fort. He is a bad man."
"No," said Trotting Wolf, in a loud voice, "he no bad man. He my
friend. Come here many days." He held up both hands. "No teef-- my
friend."
A loud murmur rose from the Indians, who in larger numbers kept
crowding nearer. At this ominous sound the Inspector swiftly drew
two revolvers, and, backing toward the man he was seeking to arrest,
said in a quiet, clear voice:
"Trotting Wolf, this man goes with me. If he is no thief he will
be back again very soon. See these guns? Six men die," shaking one
of them, "when this goes off. And six more die," shaking the other,
"when this goes off. The first man will be you, Trotting Wolf, and
this man second."
Trotting Wolf hesitated.
"Trotting Wolf," said Cameron. "See these guns? Twelve men die if
you make any fuss. You steal my cattle. You cannot stop your young
men. The Piegans need a new Chief. If this man is no thief he will
be back again in a few days. The Inspector speaks truth. You know he
never lies."
Still Trotting Wolf stood irresolute. The Indians began to shuffle
and crowd nearer.
"Trotting Wolf," said the Inspector sharply, "tell your men that
the first man that steps beyond that poplar-tree dies. That is my
word."
The Chief spoke to the crowd. There was a hoarse guttural murmur
in response, but those nearest to the tree backed away from it. They
knew the Police never showed a gun except when prepared to use it.
For years they had been accustomed to the administration of justice
and the enforcement of law at the hands of the North West Mounted
Police, and among the traditions of that Force the Indians had learned
to accept two as absolutely settled: the first, that they never failed
to get the man they wanted; the second, that their administration of
law was marked by the most rigid justice. It was Chief Onawata himself
that found the solution.
"Me no thief. Me no steal horse. Me Big Chief. Me go to your
Fort. My heart clean. Me see your Big Chief." He uttered these
words with an air of quiet but impressive dignity.
"That's sensible," said the Inspector, moving toward him. "You
will get full justice. Come along!"
"I go see my boy. My boy sick." His voice became low, soft,
almost tremulous.
"Certainly," said Cameron. "Go in and see the lad. And we will
see that you get fair play."
"Good!" said the Indian, and, turning on his heel, he passed into
the teepee where his boy lay.
Through the teepee wall their voices could be heard in quiet
conversation. In a few minutes the old squaw passed out on an errand
and then in again, eying the Inspector as she passed with malevolent
hate. Again she passed out, this time bowed down under a load of
blankets and articles of Indian household furniture, and returned no
more. Still the conversation within the teepee continued, the boy's
voice now and again rising high, clear, the other replying in low,
even, deep tones.
"I will just get my horse, Inspector," said Cameron, making his way
through the group of Indians to where Ginger was standing with sad
and drooping head.
"Time's up, I should say," said the Inspector to Cameron as he
returned with his horse. "Just give him a call, will you?"
Cameron stepped to the door of the teepee.
"Come along, Chief, we must be going," he said, putting his head
inside the teepee door. "Hello!" he cried, "Where the deuce--where
is he gone?" He sprang quickly out of the teepee. "Has he passed
out?"
"Passed out?" said the Inspector. "No. Is he not inside?"
"He's not here."
Both men rushed into the teepee. On the couch the boy still lay,
his eyes brilliant with fever but more with hate. At the foot of the
couch still crouched the old crone, but there was no sign of the
Chief.
"Get up!" said the Inspector to the old squaw, turning the blankets
and skins upside down.
"Hee! hee!" she laughed in diabolical glee, spitting at him as he
passed.
"Did no one enter?" asked Cameron.
"Not a soul."
"Nor go out?"
"No one except the old squaw here. I saw her go out with a pack."
"With a pack!" echoed Cameron. And the two men stood looking at
each other. "By Jove!" said Cameron in deep disgust, "We're done. He
is rightly named Copperhead. Quick!" he cried, "Let us search this
camp, though it's not much use."
And so indeed it proved. Through every teepee they searched in hot
haste, tumbling out squalling squaws and papooses. But all in vain.
Copperhead had as completely disappeared as if he had vanished into
thin air. With faces stolid and unmoved by a single gleam of
satisfaction the Indians watched their hurried search.
"We will take a turn around this camp," said Cameron, swinging on
to his pony. "You hear me!" he continued, riding up close to
Trotting Wolf, "We haven't got our man but we will come back again.
And listen carefully! If I lose a single steer this fall I shall
come and take you, Trotting Wolf, to the Fort, if I have to bring you
by the hair of the head."
But Trotting Wolf only shrugged his shoulders, saying:
"No see cow."
"Is there any use taking a look around this camp?" said the
Inspector.
"What else can we do?" said Cameron. "We might as well. There is
a faint chance we might come across a trace."
But no trace did they find, though they spent an hour and more in
close and minute scrutiny of the ground about the camp and the trails
leading out from it.
"Where now?" inquired the Inspector.
"Home for me," said Cameron. "To-morrow to Calgary. Next week I
take up this trail. You may as well come along with me, Inspector.
We can talk things over as we go."
They were a silent and chagrined pair as they rode out from the
Reserve toward the ranch. As they were climbing from the valley to
the plateau above they came to a soft bit of ground. Here Cameron
suddenly drew rein with a warning cry, and, flinging himself off his
broncho, was upon his knee examining a fresh track.
"A pony-track, by all that's holy! And within an hour. It is our
man," he cried, examining the trail carefully and following it up the
hill and out on to the plateau. "It is our man sure enough, and he is
taking this trail."
For some miles the pony-tracks were visible enough. There was no
attempt to cover them. The rider was evidently pushing hard.
"Where do you think he is heading for, Inspector?"
"Well," said the Inspector, "this trail strikes toward the
Blackfoot Reserve by way of your ranch."
"My ranch!" cried Cameron. "My God! Look there!"
As he spoke the ginger-colored broncho leaped into a gallop. Five
miles away a thin column of smoke could be seen rising up into the
air. Every mile made it clearer to Cameron that the smoke rising
from behind the round-topped hill before him was from his ranch-
buildings, and every mile intensified his anxiety. His wife was
alone on the ranch at the mercy of that fiend. That was the
agonizing thought that tore at his heart as his panting broncho
pounded along the trail. From the top of the hill overlooking the
ranch a mile away his eye swept the scene below, swiftly taking in
the details. The ranch-house was in flames and burning fiercely. The
stables were untouched. A horse stood tied to the corral and two
figures were hurrying to and fro about the blazing building. As they
neared the scene it became clear that one of the figures was that of a
woman.
"Mandy!" he shouted from afar. "Mandy, thank God it's you!"
But they were too absorbed in their business of fighting the fire.
They neither heard nor saw him till he flung himself off his broncho
at their side.
"Oh, thank God, Mandy!" he panted, "you are safe." He gathered her
into his arms.
"Oh, Allan, I am so sorry."
"Sorry? Sorry? Why?"
"Our beautiful house!"
"House?"
"And all our beautiful things!"
"Things!" He laughed aloud. "House and things! Why, Mandy, I
have YOU safe. What else matters?" Again he laughed aloud, holding
her off from him at arm's length and gazing at her grimy face.
"Mandy," he said, "I believe you are improving every day in your
appearance, but you never looked so stunning as this blessed minute."
Again he laughed aloud. He was white and trembling.
"But the house, Allan!"
"Oh, yes, by the way," he said, "the house. And who's the Johnny
carrying water there?"
"Oh, I quite forgot. That's Thatcher's new man."
"Rather wobbly about the knees, isn't he?" cried Cameron. "By
Jove, Mandy! I feared I should never see you again," he said in a
voice that trembled and broke. "And what's the chap's name?" he
inquired.
"Smith, I think," said Mandy.
"Smith? Fine fellow! Most useful name!" cried Cameron.
"What's the matter, Allan?"
"The matter? Nothing now, Mandy. Nothing matters. I was afraid
that--but no matter. Hello, here's the Inspector!"
"Dear Mrs. Cameron," cried the Inspector, taking both her hands in
his, "I'm awfully glad there's nothing wrong."
"Nothing wrong? Look at that house!"
"Oh, yes, awfully sorry. But we were afraid--of that--eh--that
is--"
"Yes, Mandy," said her husband, making visible efforts to control
his voice, "we frankly were afraid that that old devil Copperhead had
come this way and--"
"He did!" cried Mandy.
"What?"
"He did. Oh, Allan, I was going to tell you just as the Inspector
came, and I am so sorry. When you left I wanted to help. I was
afraid of what all those Indians might do to you, so I thought I
would ride up the trail a bit. I got near to where it branches off
toward the Reserve near by those pine trees. There I saw a man come
tearing along on a pony. It was this Indian. I drew aside. He was
just going past when he glanced at me. He stopped and came rushing at
me, waving a pistol in his hand. Oh, such a face! I wonder I ever
thought him fine-looking. He caught me by the arm. I thought his
fingers would break the bone. Look!" She pulled up her sleeve, and
upon the firm brown flesh blue and red finger marks could be seen.
"He caught me and shook me and fairly yelled at me, 'You save my boy
once. Me save you to-day. Next time me see your man me kill him.'
He flung me away from him and nearly off my horse--such eyes! such a
face!--and went galloping off down the trail. I feared I was going to
be ill, so I came on homeward. When I reached the top of the hill I
saw the smoke and by the time I arrived the house was blazing and
Smith was carrying water to put out the fire where it had caught upon
the smoke house and stables."
The men listened to her story with tense white faces. When she had
finished Cameron said quietly:
"Mandy, roll me up some grub in a blanket."
"Where are you going, Allan?" her face pale as his own.
"Going? To get my hands on that Indian's throat."
"But not now?"
"Yes, now," he said, moving toward his horse.
"What about me, Allan?"
The word arrested him as if a hand had gripped him.
"You," he said in a dazed manner. "Why, Mandy, of course, there's
you. He might have killed you." Then, shaking his shoulders as if
throwing off a load, he said impatiently, "Oh, I am a fool. That
devil has sent me off my head. I tell you what, Mandy, we will feed
first, then we will make new plans."
"And there is Moira, too," said Mandy.
"Yes, there is Moira. We will plan for her too. After all," he
continued, with a slight laugh and with slow deliberation,
"there's--lots--of time--to--get him!"
The sun had reached the peaks of the Rockies far in the west,
touching their white with red, and all the lesser peaks and all the
rounded hills between with great splashes of gold and blue and
purple. It is the sunset and the sunrise that make the foothill
country a world of mystery and of beauty, a world to dream about and
long for in later days.
Through this mystic world of gold and blue and purple drove Cameron
and his wife, on their way to the little town of Calgary, three days
after the ruthless burning of their home. As the sun dipped behind
the western peaks they reached the crossing of the Elbow and entered
the wide Bow Valley, upon whose level plain was situated the busy,
ambitious and would-be wicked little pioneer town. The town and plain
lay bathed in a soft haze of rosy purple that lent a kind of Oriental
splendor to the tawdry, unsightly cluster of shacks that sprawled here
and there in irregular bunches on the prairie.
"What a picture it makes!" cried Mandy. "How wonderful this great
plain with its encircling rivers, those hills with the great peaks
beyond! What a site for a town!"
"There is no finer," replied her husband, "anywhere in the world
that I know, unless it be that of 'Auld Reekie.'"
"Meaning?"
"Meaning!" he echoed indignantly. "What else but the finest of all
the capitals of Europe?"
"London?" inquired Mandy.
"London!" echoed her husband contemptuously. "You ignorant
Colonial! Edinburgh, of course. But this is perfectly splendid," he
continued. "I never get used to the wonder of Calgary. You see that
deep cut between those peaks in the far west? That is where 'The Gap'
lies, through which the Bow flows toward us. A great site this for a
great town some day. But you ought to see these peaks in the morning
with the sunlight coming up from the east across the foothills and
falling upon them. Whoa, there! Steady, Pepper!" he cried to the
broncho, which owed its name to the speckled appearance of its hide,
and which at the present moment was plunging and kicking at a dog that
had rushed out from an Indian encampment close by the trail. "Did you
never see an Indian dog before?"
"Oh, Allan," cried Mandy with a shudder, "do you know I can't bear
to look at an Indian since last week, and I used to like them."
"Hardly fair, though, to blame the whole race for the deviltry of
one specimen."
"I know that, but--"
"This is a Sarcee camp, I fancy. They are a cunning lot and not
the most reliable of the Indians. Let me see--three--four teepees.
Ought to be fifteen or twenty in that camp. Only squaws about. The
braves apparently are in town painting things up a bit."
A quarter of a mile past the Indian encampment the trail made a
sharp turn into what appeared to be the beginning of the main street
of the town.
"By Jove!" cried Cameron. "Here they come. Sit tight, Mandy." He
pointed with his whip down the trail to what seemed to be a rolling
cloud of dust, vocal with wild whoops and animated with plunging
figures of men and ponies.
"Steady, there, boys! Get on!" cried Cameron to his plunging,
jibing bronchos, who were evidently unwilling to face that rolling
cloud of dust with its mass of shrieking men and galloping ponies
thundering down upon them. Swift and fierce upon their flanks fell
the hissing lash. "Stand up to them, you beggars!" he shouted to his
bronchos, which seemed intent upon turning tail and joining the
approaching cavalcade. "Hie, there! Hello! Look out!" he yelled,
standing up in his wagon, waving his whip and holding his bronchos
steadily on the trail. The next moment the dust cloud enveloped them
and the thundering cavalcade, parting, surged by on either side.
Cameron was wild with rage.
"Infernal cheeky brutes!" he cried. "For two shillings I'd go back
and break some of their necks. Ride me down, would they?" he
continued, grinding his teeth in fury.
He pulled up his bronchos with half a mind to turn them about and
pursue the flying Indians. His experience and training with the
Mounted Police made it difficult for him to accept with equal mind
what he called the infernal cheek of a bunch of Indians. At the
entreaties of his wife, however, he hesitated in carrying his purpose
into effect.
"Let them go," said Mandy. "They didn't hurt us, after all."
"Didn't? No thanks to them. They might have killed you. Well, I
shall see about this later." He gave his excited bronchos their head
and sailed into town, drawing up in magnificent style at the Royal
Hotel.
An attendant in cowboy garb came lounging up.
"Hello, Billy!" cried Cameron. "Still blooming?"
"Sure! And rosebuds ain't in it with you, Colonel." Billy was
from the land of colonels. "You've got a whole garden with you this
trip, eh?"
"My wife, Billy," replied Cameron, presenting her.
Billy pulled off his Stetson.
"Proud to meet you, madam. Hope I see you well and happy."
"Yes, indeed, well and happy," cried Mandy emphatically.
"Sure thing, if looks mean anything," said Billy, admiration
glowing in his eyes.
"Take the horses, Billy. They have come a hundred and fifty
miles."
"Hundred and fifty, eh? They don't look it. But I'll take care of
'em all right. You go right in."
"I shall be back presently, Billy," said Cameron, passing into the
dingy sitting-room that opened off the bar.
In a few minutes he had his wife settled in a frowsy little eight-
by-ten bedroom, the best the hotel afforded, and departed to attend
to his team, make arrangements for supper and inquire about the
incoming train. The train he found to be three hours late. His team
he found in the capable hands of Billy, who was unharnessing and
rubbing them down. While ordering his supper a hand gripped his
shoulder and a voice shouted in his ear:
"Hello, old sport! How goes it?"
"Martin, old boy!" shouted Cameron in reply. "It's awfully good to
see you. How did you get here? Oh, yes, of course, I remember. You
left the construction camp and came here to settle down." All the
while Cameron was speaking he was shaking his friend's hand with both
of his. "By Jove, but you're fit!" he continued, running his eye over
the slight but athletic figure of his friend.
"Fit! Never fitter, not even in the old days when I used to pass
the pigskin to you out of the scrimmage. But you? You're hardly up
to the mark." The keen gray eyes searched Cameron's face. "What's up
with you?"
"Oh, nothing. A little extra work and a little worry, but I'll
tell you later."
"Well, what are you on to now?" inquired Martin.
"Ordering our supper. We've just come in from a hundred and fifty
miles' drive."
"Supper? Your wife here too? Glory! It's up to me, old boy!
Look here, Connolly," he turned to the proprietor behind the bar, "a
bang-up supper for three. All the season's delicacies and all the
courses in order. As you love me, Connolly, do us your prettiest.
And soon, awfully soon. A hundred and fifty miles, remember. Now,
then, how's my old nurse?" he continued, turning back to Cameron.
"She was my nurse, remember, till you came and stole her."
"She was, eh? Ask her," laughed Cameron. "But she will be glad to
see you. Where's MY nurse, then, my little nurse, who saw me through
a fever and a broken leg?"
"Oh, she's up in the mountains still, in the construction camp. I
proposed to bring her down here with me, but there was a riot. I
barely escaped. If ever she gets out from that camp it will be when
they are all asleep or when she is in a box car."
"Come along, then," cried Cameron. "I have much to tell you, and
my wife will be glad to see you. My sister comes in by No. 1, do you
know?"
"Your sister? By No. 1? You don't say! Why, I never thought your
sister--by No. 1, eh?"
"Yes, by No. 1."
"Say, Doc," said the hotel man, breaking into the conversation.
"There's a bunch of 'em comin' in, ain't there? Who's the lady you
was expectin' yourself on No. 1?"
"Lady?" said Cameron. "What's this, Martin?"
"Me? Wake up, Connolly, you're walking in your sleep," violently
signaling to the hotel man.
"Oh, it won't do, Martin," said Cameron with grave concern. "You
may as well own up. Who is it? Come. By Jove! What? A blush? And
on that asbestos cheek? Something here, sure enough."
"Oh, rot, Cameron! Connolly is a well-known somnambulist."
"Sure thing!" said Connolly. "Is it catchin,' for I guess you had
the same thing last night?"
"Connolly, you've gone batty! You need a nurse."
"A nurse? Maybe so. Maybe so. But I guess you've got to the
point where you need a preacher. Ha! ha! Got you that time, Doc!"
laughed the hotel man, winking at Cameron.
"Oh, let it out, Martin. You'll feel better afterward. Who is
it?"
"Cameron, so help me! Connolly is an infernal ass. He's batty, I
tell you. I'm treating him for it right now."
"All right," said Cameron, "never mind. I shall run up and tell my
wife you are here. Wait for me," he cried, as he ran up the stairs.
"Connolly, you fool! I'll knock your wooden block off!" said the
doctor in a fury.
"But, Doc, you did say--"
"Oh, confound you! Shut up! It was--"
"But you did say--"
"Will you shut up?"
"Certain, sure I'll shut up. But you said--"
"Look here!" broke in the doctor impatiently. "He'll be down in a
minute. I don't want him to know."
"Aw, Doc, cut it out! He ain't no Lady Clara."
"Connolly, close that trap of yours and listen to me. This is
serious. He'll be back in a jiffy. It's the same lady as he is
going to meet."
"Same lady? But she's his sister."
"Yes, of course, you idiot! She's his sister. And now you've
queered me with him and he will think--"
"Aw, Doc, let me be. I'll straighten that tangle out."
"Sh-h! Here he is. Not a word, on your life!"
"Aw, get out!" replied Connolly with generous enthusiasm. "I don't
leave no pard of mine in a hole. Say," he cried, turning to Cameron,
"about that lady. Ha! ha!"
"Shut your ugly mug!" said the doctor savagely.
"It's the same lady. Ha! ha! Good joke, eh, Sergeant?"
"Same lady?" echoed Cameron.
"Sure, same lady."
"What does he mean, Martin?"
"The man's drunk, Cameron. He got a permit last week and he hasn't
been sober for a day since."
"Ha! ha!" laughed Connolly again. "Wish I had a chance."
"But the lady?" said Cameron, looking at his friend suspiciously.
"And these blushes?"
"Oh, well, hang it!" said Martin. "I suppose I might as well tell
you. I found out that your sister was to be in on this train, and in
case you should not turn up I told Connolly here to have a room
ready."
"Oh," said Cameron, with his eyes upon his friend's face. "You
found out? And how did you find out that Moira was coming?"
"Well," said Martin, his face growing hotter with every word of
explanation, "you have a wife and we have a mutual friend in our
little nurse, and that's how I learned. And so I thought I'd be on
hand anyway. You remember I met your sister up at your Highland home
with the unpronounceable name."
"Ah, yes! Cuagh Oir. Dear old spot!" said Cameron reminiscently.
"Moira will be heart broken every day when she sees the Big Horn
Ranch, I'm afraid. But here comes Mandy."
The meeting between the doctor and Cameron's wife was like that
between old comrades in arms, as indeed they had been through many a
hard fight with disease, accident and death during the construction
days along the line of the Canadian Pacific Railway through the Rocky
Mountains.
A jolly hour they had together at supper, exchanging news and
retailing the latest jokes. And then Cameron told his friend the
story of old Copperhead and of the task laid upon him by
Superintendent Strong. Martin listened in grave silence till the
tale was done, then said with quiet gravity:
"Cameron, this is a serious business. Why! It's--it's terrible."
"Yes," replied Mandy quickly, "but you can see that he must do it.
We have quite settled that. You see there are the women and
children."
"And is there no one else? Surely--"
"No, there is no one else quite so fit to do it," said Mandy.
"By Jove, you're a wonder!" cried Martin, his face lighting up with
sudden enthusiasm.
"Not much of a wonder," she replied, a quick tremor in her voice.
"Not much of a wonder, I'm afraid. But how could I keep him? I
couldn't keep him, could I," she said, "if his country needs him?"
The doctor glanced at her face with its appealing deep blue eyes.
"No, by Jove! You couldn't keep him, not you."
"Now, Mandy," said Cameron, "you must upstairs and to bed." He
read aright the signs upon her face. "You are tired and you will
need all the sleep you can get. Wait for me, Martin, I'll be down in
a few moments."
When they reached their room Cameron turned and took his wife in
his arms.
"Mandy! as Martin says, you are wonderful. You are a brave woman.
You have nerve enough for both of us, and you will need to have nerve
for both, for how I am going to leave you I know not. But now you
must to bed. I have a little business to attend to."
"Business?" inquired his wife.
"Yes. Oh, I won't try to hide it from you, Mandy. It's 'The Big
Business.' We are--Dr. Martin and I--going up to the Barracks.
Superintendent Strong has come down for a consultation." He paused
and looked into his wife's face. "I must go, dear."
"Yes, yes, I know, Allan. You must go. But--do you know--it's
foolish to say it, but as those Indians passed us I fancied I saw the
face of Copperhead."
"Hardly, I fancy," said her husband with a laugh. "He'd know
better than run into this town in open day just now. All Indians
will look to you like old Copperhead for a while."
"It may be so. I fancy I'm a little nervous. But come back soon."
"You may be sure of that, sweetheart. Meantime sleep well."
The little town of Calgary stands on one of the most beautiful
town-sites in all the world. A great plain with ramparts of hills on
every side, encircled by the twin mountain rivers, the Bow and the
Elbow, overlooked by rolling hills and far away to the west by the
mighty peaks of the Rockies, it holds at once ample space and unusual
picturesque beauty. The little town itself was just emerging from its
early days as a railway construction-camp and was beginning to develop
ambitions toward a well-ordered business activity and social
stability. It was an all-night town, for the simple and sufficient
reason that its communications with the world lying to the east and to
the west began with the arrival of No. 2 at half-past twelve at night
and No. 1 at five o'clock next morning. Few of its citizens thought
it worth while to settle down for the night until after the departure
of No. 2 on its westward journey.
Through this "all-night" little town Cameron and the doctor took
their way. The sidewalks were still thronged, the stores still doing
business, the restaurants, hotels, pool-rooms all wide open. It kept
Sergeant Crisp busy enough running out the "tin-horn" gamblers and
whisky-peddlers, keeping guard over the fresh and innocent lambs that
strayed in from the East and across from the old land ready for
shearing, and preserving law and order in this hustling frontier town.
Money was still easy in the town, and had Sergeant Crisp been minded
for the mere closing of his eyes or turning of his back upon occasion
he might have retired early from the Force with a competency.
Unhappily for Sergeant Crisp, however, there stood in the pathway of
his fortune the awkward fact of his conscience and his oath of
service. Consequently he was forced to grub along upon the munificent
bounty of the daily pay with which Her Majesty awarded the faithful
service of the non- coms. in her North West Mounted Police Force. And
indeed through all the wide reaches of that great West land during
those pioneer days and among all the officers of that gallant force no
record can be found of an officer who counted fortune dearer than
honor.
Through this wide awake, wicked, but well-watched little town
Cameron with his friend made his way westward toward the Barracks to
keep his appointment with his former Chief, Superintendent Strong.
The Barracks stood upon the prairie about half a mile distant from
the town. They found Superintendent Strong fuming with impatience,
which he controlled with difficulty while Cameron presented his
friend.
"Well, Cameron, you've come at last," was his salutation when the
introduction was completed. "When did you get into town? I have
been waiting all day to see you. Where have you been?"
"Arrived an hour ago," said Cameron shortly, for he did not half
like the Superintendent's brusque manner. "The trail was heavy owing
to the rain day before yesterday."
"When did you leave the ranch?" inquired Sergeant Crisp.
"Yesterday morning," said Cameron. "The colts were green and I
couldn't send them along."
"Yesterday morning!" exclaimed Sergeant Crisp. "You needn't
apologize for the colts, Cameron."
"I wasn't apologizing for anybody or anything. I was making a
statement of fact," replied Cameron curtly.
"Ah, yes, very good going, Cameron. Very good going, indeed, I
should say," said the Superintendent, conscious of his own
brusqueness and anxious to appease. "Did Mrs. Cameron come with
you?"
"She did."
"Indeed. That is a long drive for a lady to make, Cameron. Too
long a drive, I should say. I hope she is quite well, not--eh--
over-fatigued?"
"She is quite well, thank you."
"Well, she is an old campaigner," said the Superintendent with a
smile, "and not easily knocked up if I remember her aright. But I
ought to say, Cameron, how very deeply I appreciate your very fine--
indeed very handsome conduct in volunteering to come to our
assistance in this matter. Very handsome indeed I call it. It will
have a good effect upon the community. I appreciate the sacrifice.
The Commissioner and the whole Force will appreciate it. But," he
added, as if to himself, "before we are through with this business I
fear there will be more sacrifice demanded from all of us. I trust
none of us will be found wanting." The Superintendent's voice was
unduly solemn, his manner almost somber. Cameron was impressed with
this manifestation of feeling so unusual with the Superintendent.
"Any more news, sir?" he inquired.
"Yes, every post brings news of seditious meetings up north along
the Saskatchewan and of indifference on the part of the Government.
And further, I have the most conclusive evidence that our Indians are
being tampered with, and successfully too. There is no reason to
doubt that the head chiefs have been approached and that many of the
minor chiefs are listening to the proposals of Riel and his
half-breeds. But you have some news to give, I understand? Dickson
said you would give me particulars."
Thereupon Cameron briefly related the incidents in connection with
the attempted arrest of the Sioux Chief, and closed with a brief
account of the burning of his home.
"That is most daring, most serious," exclaimed the Superintendent.
"But you are quite certain that it was the Sioux that was responsible
for the outrage?"
"Well," said Cameron, "he met my wife on a trail five miles away,
threatened her, and--"
"Good God, Cameron! Threatened your wife?"
"Yes, nearly flung her off her horse," replied Cameron, his voice
quiet and even, but his eyes glowing like fires in his white face.
"Flung her off her horse? But--he didn't injure her?" replied the
Superintendent.
"Only that he terrified her with his threats and then went on
toward the house, which he left in flames."
"My God, Cameron!" said the Superintendent, rising in his
excitement. "This is really terrible. You must have suffered awful
anxiety. I apologize for my abrupt manner a moment ago," he added,
offering his hand. "I'm awfully sorry."
"It's all right, Superintendent," replied Cameron. "I'm afraid I
am a little upset myself."
"But what a God's mercy she escaped! How came that, I wonder?"
Then Cameron told the story of the rescue of the Indian boy.
"That undoubtedly explains it," exclaimed the Superintendent.
"That was a most fortunate affair. Do an Indian a good turn and he
will never forget it. I shudder to think of what might have happened,
for I assure you that this Copperhead will stick at nothing. We have
an unusually able man to deal with, and we shall put our whole Force
on this business of arresting this man. Have you any suggestions
yourself?"
"No," said Cameron, "except that it would appear to be a mistake to
give any sign that we were very specially anxious to get him just
now. So far we have not shown our hand. Any concentrating of the
Force upon his capture would only arouse suspicion and defeat our
aim, while my going after him, no matter how keenly, will be
accounted for on personal grounds."
"There is something in that, but do you think you can get him?"
"I am going to get him," said Cameron quietly.
The superintendent glanced at his face.
"By Jove, I believe you will! But remember, you can count on me
and on my Force to a man any time and every time to back you up, and
there's my hand on it. And now, let's get at this thing. We have a
cunning devil to do with and he has gathered about him the very worst
elements on the reserves."
Together they sat and made their plans till far on into the night.
But as a matter of fact they could make little progress. They knew
well it would be extremely difficult to discover their man. Owing to
the state of feeling throughout the reserves the source of information
upon which the Police ordinarily relied had suddenly dried up or
become untrustworthy. A marked change had come over the temper of the
Indians. While as yet they were apparently on friendly terms and
guilty of no open breach of the law, a sullen and suspicious aloofness
marked the bearing of the younger braves and even of some of the
chiefs toward the Police. Then, too, among the Piegans in the south
and among the Sarcees whose reserve was in the neighborhood of Calgary
an epidemic of cattle-stealing had broken out and the Police were
finding it increasingly difficult to bring the criminals to justice.
Hence with this large increase in crime and with the changed attitude
and temper of the Indians toward the Police, such an amount of
additional patrol-work was necessary that the Police had almost
reached the limit of their endurance.
"In fact, we have really a difficult proposition before us, short-
handed as we are," said the Superintendent as they closed their
interview. "Indeed, if things become much worse we may find it
necessary to organize the settlers as Home Guards. An outbreak on
the Saskatchewan might produce at any moment the most serious results
here and in British Columbia. Meantime, while we stand ready to help
all we can, it looks to me, Cameron, that you are right and that in
this business you must go it alone pretty much."
"I realize that, sir," replied Cameron. "But first I must get my
house built and things in shape, then I hope to take this up."
"Most certainly," replied the Superintendent. "Take a month. He
can't do much more harm in a month, and meantime we shall do our
utmost to obtain information and we shall keep you informed of
anything we discover."
The Superintendent and Sergeant accompanied Cameron and his friend
to the door.
"It is a black night," said Sergeant Crisp. "I hope they're not
running any 'wet freight' in to-night."
"It's a good night for it, Sergeant," said Dr. Martin. "Do you
expect anything to come in?"
"I have heard rumors," replied the Sergeant, "and there is a
freight train standing right there now which I have already gone
through but upon which it is worth while still to keep an eye."
"Well, good-night," said the Superintendent, shaking Cameron by the
hand. "Keep me posted and when within reach be sure and see me.
Good-night, Dr. Martin. We may want you too before long."
"All right, sir, you have only to say the word."
The night was so black that the trail which in the daylight was
worn smooth and plainly visible was quite blotted out. The light
from the Indian camp fire, which was blazing brightly a hundred yards
away, helped them to keep their general direction.
"For a proper black night commend me to the prairie," said the
doctor. "It is the dead level does it, I believe. There is nothing
to cast a reflection or a shadow."
"It will be better in a few minutes," said Cameron, "when we get
our night sight."
"You are off the trail a bit, I think," said the doctor.
"Yes, I know. I am hitting toward the fire. The light makes it
better going that way."
"I say, that chap appears to be going some. Quite a song and dance
he's giving them," said the doctor, pointing to an Indian who in the
full light of the camp fire was standing erect and, with hand
outstretched, was declaiming to the others, who, kneeling or
squatting about the fire, were giving him rapt attention. The erect
figure and outstretched arm arrested Cameron. A haunting sense of
familiarity floated across his memory.
"Let's go nearer," he said, "and quietly."
With extreme caution they made about two-thirds of the distance
when a howl from an Indian dog revealed their presence. At once the
speaker who had been standing in the firelight sank crouching to the
ground. Instantly Cameron ran forward a few swift steps and, like a
hound upon a deer, leapt across the fire and fair upon the crouching
Indian, crying "Call the Police, Martin!"
With a loud cry of "Police! Police! Help here!" Martin sprang
into the middle of an excited group of Indians. Two of them threw
themselves upon him, but with a hard right and left he laid them low
and, seizing a stick of wood, sprang toward two others who were
seeking to batter the life out of Cameron as he lay gripping his
enemy by the throat with one hand and with the other by the wrist to
check a knife thrust. Swinging his stick around his head and
repeating his cry for help, Martin made Cameron's assailants give
back a space and before they could renew the attack Sergeant Crisp
burst open the door of the Barracks, and, followed by a Slim young
constable and the Superintendent, came rushing with shouts upon the
scene. Immediately upon the approach of the Police the Indians
ceased the fight and all that could faded out of the light into the
black night around them, while the Indian who continued to struggle
with incredible fury to free himself from Cameron's grip suddenly
became limp and motionless.
"Now, what's all this?" demanded the Sergeant. "Why, it's you,
doctor, and where--? You don't mean that's Cameron there? Hello,
Cameron!" he said, leaning over him. "Let go! He's safe enough.
We've got him all right. Let go! By Jove! Are they both dead?"
Here the Superintendent came up. The incidents leading up to the
present situation were briefly described by the doctor.
"I can't get this fellow free," said the Sergeant, who was working
hard to release the Indian's throat from the gripping fingers. He
turned Cameron over on his back. He was quite insensible. Blood was
pouring from his mouth and nose, but his fingers like steel clamps
were gripping the wrist and throat of his foe. The Indian lay like
dead.
"Good Lord, doctor! What shall we do?" cried the Superintendent.
"Is he dead?"
"No," said Martin, with his hand upon Cameron's heart. "Bring
water. You can't loosen his fingers till he revives. The blow that
knocked him senseless set those fingers as they are and they will stay
set thus till released by returning consciousness."
"Here then, get water quick!" shouted the Superintendent to the
slim young constable.
Gradually as the water was splashed upon his face Cameron came back
to life and, relaxing his fingers, stretched himself with a sigh as
of vast relief and lay still.
"Here, take that, you beast!" cried the Sergeant, dashing the rest
of the water into the face of the Indian lying rigid and motionless
on the ground. A long shudder ran through the Indian's limbs.
Clutching at his throat with both hands, he raised himself to a
sitting posture, his breath coming in raucous gasps, glared wildly
upon the group, then sank back upon the ground, rolled over upon his
side and lay twitching and breathing heavily, unheeded by the doctor
and Police who were working hard over Cameron.
"No bones broken, I think," said the doctor, feeling the battered
head. "Here's where the blow fell that knocked him out," pointing to
a ridge that ran along the side of Cameron's head. "A little lower, a
little more to the front and he would never have moved. Let's get him
in."
Cameron opened his eyes, struggled to speak and sank back again.
"Don't stir, old chap. You're all right. Don't move for a bit.
Could you get a little brandy, Sergeant?"
Again the slim young constable rushed toward the Barracks and in a
few moments returned with the spirits. After taking a sip of the
brandy Cameron again opened his eyes and managed to say "Don't--"
"All right, old chap," said the doctor. "We won't move you yet.
Just lie still a bit." But as once more Cameron opened his eyes the
agony of the appeal in them aroused the doctor's attention. "Something
wrong, eh?" he said. "Are you in pain, old boy?"
The appealing eyes closed, then, opening again, turned toward the
Superintendent.
"Copperhead," he whispered.
"What do you say?" said the Superintendent kneeling down.
Once more with painful effort Cameron managed to utter the word
"Copperhead."
"Copperhead!" ejaculated the Superintendent in a low tense voice,
springing to his feet and turning toward the unconscious Indian.
"He's gone!" he cried with a great oath. "He's gone! Sergeant
Crisp!" he shouted, "Call out the whole Force! Surround this camp
and hold every Indian. Search every teepee for this fellow who was
lying here. Quick! Quick!" Leaving Cameron to the doctor, who in a
few minutes became satisfied that no serious injury had been
sustained, he joined in the search with fierce energy. The teepees
were searched, the squaws and papooses were ruthlessly bundled out
from their slumbers and with the Indians were huddled into the
Barracks. But of the Sioux Chief there was no sign. He had utterly
vanished. The black prairie had engulfed him.
But the Police had their own methods. Within a quarter of an hour
half a dozen mounted constables were riding off in different
directions to cover the main trails leading to the Indian reserves
and to sweep a wide circle about the town.
"They will surely get him," said Dr. Martin confidently.
"Not much chance of it," growled Cameron, to whom with returning
consciousness had come the bitter knowledge of the escape of the man
he had come to regard as his mortal enemy. "I had him fast enough,"
he groaned, "in spite of the best he could do, and I would have choked
his life out had it not been for these other devils."
"They certainly jumped in savagely," said Martin. "In fact I
cannot understand how they got at the thing so quickly."
"Didn't you hear him call?" said Cameron. "It was his call that
did it. Something he said turned them into devils. They were bound
to do for me. I never saw Indians act like that."
"Yes, I heard that call, and it mighty near did the trick for you.
Thank Heaven your thick Hielan' skull saved you."
"How did they let him go?" again groaned Cameron.
"How? Because he was too swift for us," said the Superintendent,
who had come in, "and we too slow. I thought it was an ordinary
Indian row, you see, but I might have known that you would not have
gone in in that style without good reason. Who would think that this
old devil should have the impudence to camp right here under our nose?
Where did he come from anyway, do you suppose?"
"Been to the Blackfoot Reserve like enough and was on his way to
the Sarcees when he fell in with this little camp of theirs."
"That's about it," replied the Superintendent gloomily. "And to
think you had him fast and we let him go!"
The thought brought small comfort to any of them, least of all to
Cameron. In that vast foothill country with all the hidings of the
hills and hollows there was little chance that the Police would round
up the fugitive, and upon Cameron still lay the task of capturing this
cunning and resourceful foe.
"Never mind," said Martin cheerily. "Three out, all out. You'll
get him next time."
"I don't know about that. But I'll get him some time or he'll get
me," replied Cameron as his face settled into grim lines. "Let's get
back."
"Are you quite fit?" inquired the Superintendent.
"Fit enough. Sore a bit in the head, but can navigate."
"I can't tell you how disappointed and chagrined I feel. It isn't
often that my wits are so slow but--" The Superintendent's jaws here
cut off his speech with a snap. The one crime reckoned unpardonable
in the men under his own command was that of failure and his failure
to capture old Copperhead thus delivered into his hands galled him
terribly.
"Well, good-night, Cameron," said the Superintendent, looking out
into the black night. "We shall let you know to-morrow the result of
our scouting, though I don't expect much from it. He is much too
clever to be caught in the open in this country."
"Perhaps he'll skidoo," said Dr. Martin hopefully.
"No, he's not that kind," replied the Superintendent. "You can't
scare him out. You have got to catch him or kill him."
"I think you are right, sir," said Cameron. "He will stay till his
work is done or till he is made to quit."
"That is true, Cameron--till he is made to quit--and that's your
job," said the Superintendent solemnly.
"Yes, that is my job, sir," replied Cameron simply and with equal
solemnity. "I shall do my best."
"We have every confidence in you, Cameron," replied the
Superintendent. "Good-night," he said again, shutting the door.
"Say, old man, this is too gruesome," said Martin with fierce
impatience. "I can't see why it's up to you more than any other."
"The Sun Dance Trail is the trail he must take to do his work.
That was my patrol last year--I know it best. God knows I don't want
this--" his breath came quick--"I am not afraid--but--but there's--
We have been together for such a little while, you know." He could
get no farther for a moment or two, then added quietly, "But somehow I
know--yes and she knows--bless her brave heart--it is my job. I must
stay with it."
By the time they had reached the hotel Cameron was glad enough to
go to his bed.
"You need not tell your wife, I suppose," said the doctor.
"Tell her? Certainly!" said Cameron. "She is with me in this. I
play fair with her. Don't you fear, she is up to it."
And so she was, and, though her face grew white as she listened to
the tale, never for a moment did her courage falter.
"Doctor, is Allan all right? Tell me," she said, her big blue eyes
holding his in a steady gaze.
"Right enough, but he must have a long sleep. You must not let him
stir at five."
"Then," said Mandy, "I shall go to meet the train, Allan."
"But you don't know Moira."
"No, but I shall find her out."
"Of course," said Dr. Martin in a deprecating tone, "I know Miss
Cameron, but--"
"Of course you do," cried Mandy. "Why, that is splendid! You will
go and Allan need not be disturbed. She will understand. Not a
word, now, Allan. We will look after this, the doctor and I, eh,
Doctor?"
"Why--eh--yes--yes certainly, of course. Why not?"
"Why not, indeed?" echoed Mandy briskly. "She will understand."
And thus it was arranged. Under the influence of a powder left by
Dr. Martin, Cameron, after an hour's tossing, fell into a heavy
sleep.
"I am so glad you are here," said Mandy to the doctor, as he looked
in upon her. "You are sure there is no injury?"
"No, nothing serious. Shock, that's all. A day's quiet will fix
him up."
"I am so thankful," said Mandy, heaving a deep sigh of relief, "and
I am so glad that you are here. And it is so nice that you know
Moira."
"You are not going to the train?" said the doctor.
"No, no, there is no need, and I don't like to leave him. Besides
you don't need me."
"N-o-o, no, not at all--certainly not," said the doctor with
growing confidence. "Good-night. I shall show her to her room."
"Oh," cried Mandy, "I shall meet you when you come. Thank you so
much. So glad you are here," she added with a tremulous smile.
The doctor passed down the stairs.
"By Jove, she's a brick!" he said to himself. "She has about all
she can stand just now. Glad I am here, eh? Well, I guess I am too.
But what about this thing? It's up to me now to do the Wild West
welcome act, and I'm scared--plain scared to death. She won't know me
from a goat. Let's see. I've got two hours yet to work up my ginger.
I'll have a pipe to start with."
He passed into the bar, where, finding himself alone, he curled up
in a big leather chair and gave himself up to his pipe and his
dreams. The dingy bar-room gave place to a little sunny glen in the
Highlands of Scotland, in which nestled a little cluster of
stone-built cottages, moss-grown and rose-covered. Far down in the
bottom of the Glen a tiny loch gleamed like a jewel. Up on the
hillside above the valley an avenue of ragged pines led to a large
manor house, old, quaint, but dignified, and in the doorway a maiden
stood, grave of face and wonderfully sweet, in whose brown eyes and
over whose brown curls all the glory of the little Glen of the Cup of
Gold seemed to gather. Through many pipes he pursued his dreams, but
always they led him to that old doorway and the maiden with the grave
sweet face and the hair and eyes full of the golden sunlight of the
Glen Cuagh Oir.
"Oh, pshaw!" he grumbled to himself at last, knocking the ashes
from his pipe. "She has forgotten me. It was only one single day.
But what a day!"
He lit a fresh pipe and began anew to dream of that wonderful day,
that day which was the one unfading point of light in all his Old
Country stay. Not even the day when he stood to receive his
parchment and the special commendation of the Senatus and of his own
professor for his excellent work lived with him like that day in the
Glen. Every detail of the picture he could recall and ever in the
foreground the maiden. With deliberate purpose he settled himself in
his chair and set himself to fill in those fine and delicate touches
that were necessary to make perfect the foreground of his picture, the
pale olive face with its bewildering frame of golden waves and curls,
the clear brown eyes, now soft and tender, now flashing with wrath,
and the voice with its soft Highland cadence.
"By Jove, I'm dotty! Clean dotty! I'll make an ass of myself,
sure thing, when I see her to-day." He sprang from his chair and
shook himself together. "Besides, she has forgotten all about me."
He looked at his watch. It was twenty minutes to train-time. He
opened the door and looked out. The chill morning air struck him
sharply in the face. He turned quickly, snatched his overcoat from a
nail in the hall and put it on.
At this point Billy, who combined in his own person the offices of
ostler, porter and clerk, appeared, his lantern shining with a dim
yellow glare in the gray light of the dawn.
"No. 1 is about due, Doc," he said.
"She is, eh? I say, Billy," said the Doctor, "want to do something
for me?" He pushed a dollar at Billy over the counter.
"Name it, Doc, without further insult," replied Billy, shoving the
dollar back with a lordly scorn.
"All right, Billy, you're a white little soul. Now listen. I want
your ladies' parlor aired."
"Aired?" gasped Billy.
"Yes, open the windows. Put on a fire. I have a lady coming--I
have--that is--Sergeant Cameron's sister is coming--"
"Say no more," said Billy with a wink. "I get you, Doc. But what
about the open window, Doc? It's rather cold."
"Open it up and put on a fire. Those Old Country people are mad
about fresh air."
"All right, Doc," replied Billy with another knowing wink. "The
best is none too good for her, eh?"
"Look here, now, Billy--" the doctor's tone grew severe--"let's
have no nonsense. This is Sergeant Cameron's sister. He is knocked
out, unable to meet her. I am taking his place. Do you get me? Now
be quick. If you have any think juice in that block of yours turn it
on."
Billy twisted one ear as if turning a cock, and tapped his forehead
with his knuckles.
"Doc," he said solemnly, "she's workin' like a watch, full jewel,
patent lever."
"All right. Now get on to this. Sitting-room aired, good fire
going, windows open and a cup of coffee."
"Coffee? Say, Doc, there ain't time. What about tea?"
"You know well enough, Billy, you haven't got any but that infernal
green stuff fit to tan the stomach of a brass monkey."
"There's another can, Doc. I know where it is. Leave it to me."
"All right, Billy, I trust you. They are death on tea in the Old
Country. And toast, Billy. What about toast?"
"Toast? Toast, eh? Well, all right, Doc. Toast it is. Trust
yours truly. You keep her out a-viewin' the scenery for half an
hour."
"And Billy, a big pitcher of hot water. They can't live without
hot water in the morning, those Old Country people."
"Sure thing, Doc. A tub if you like."
"No, a pitcher will do."
At this point a long drawn whistle sounded through the still
morning air.
"There she goes, Doc. She has struck the grade. Say, Doc--"
But his words fell upon empty space. The doctor had already
disappeared.
"Say, he's a sprinter," said Billy to himself. "He ain't takin' no
chances on bein' late. Shouldn't be surprised if the Doc got there
all right."
He darted upstairs and looked around the ladies' parlor. The air
was heavy with mingled odors of the bar and the kitchen. A spittoon
occupied a prominent place in the center of the room. The tables were
dusty, the furniture in confusion. The ladies' parlor was perfectly
familiar to Billy, but this morning he viewed it with new eyes.
"Say, the Doc ain't fair. He's too swift in his movements," he
muttered to himself as he proceeded to fling things into their
places. He raised the windows, opened the stove door and looked in.
The ashes of many fires half filling the box met his eyes with silent
reproach. "Say, the Doc ain't fair," he muttered again. "Them ashes
ought to have been out of there long ago." This fact none knew better
than himself, inasmuch as there was no other from whom this duty might
properly be expected. Yet it brought some small relief to vent his
disgust upon this offending accumulation of many days' neglect. There
was not a moment to lose. He was due in ten minutes to meet the
possible guests for the Royal at the train. He seized a pail left in
the hall by the none too tidy housemaid and with his hands scooped
into it the ashes from the stove, and, leaving a cloud of dust to
settle everywhere upon tables and chairs, ran down with his pail and
back again with kindling and firewood and had a fire going in an
extraordinarily short time. He then caught up an ancient
antimacassar, used it as a duster upon chairs and tables, flung it
back again in its place over the rickety sofa and rushed for the
station to find that the train had already pulled in, had come to a
standstill and was disgorging its passengers upon the platform.
"Roy--al Ho--tel!" shouted Billy. "Best in town! All the comforts
and conveniences! Yes, sir! Take your grip, sir? Just give me them
checks! That's all right, leave 'em to me. I'll get your baggage all
right."
He saw the doctor wandering distractedly up and down the platform.
"Hello, Doc, got your lady? Not on the Pullman, eh? Take a look
in the First Class. Say, Doc," he added in a lower voice, coming
near to the doctor, "what's that behind you?"
The doctor turned sharply and saw a young lady whose long clinging
black dress made her seem taller than she was. She wore a little
black hat with a single feather on one side, which gave it a sort of
tam o' shanter effect. She came forward with hand outstretched.
"I know you, Mr. Martin," she said in a voice that indicated
immense relief.
"You?" he cried. "Is it you? And to think I didn't know you. And
to think you should remember me."
"Remember! Well do I remember you--and that day in the Cuagh Oir--
but you have forgotten all about that day." A little flush appeared
on her pale cheek.
"Forgotten?" cried Martin.
"But you didn't know me," she added with a slight severity in her
tone.
"I was not looking for you."
"Not looking for me?" cried the girl. "Then who--?" She paused in
a sudden confusion, and with a little haughty lift of her head said,
"Where is Allan, my brother?"
But the doctor ignored her question. He was gazing at her in
stupid amazement.
"I was looking for a little girl," he said, "in a blue serge dress
and tangled hair, brown, and all curls, with brown eyes and--"
"And you found a grown up woman with all the silly curls in their
proper place--much older--very much older. It is a habit we have in
Scotland of growing older."
"Older?"
"Yes, older, and more sober and sensible--and plainer."
"Plainer?" The doctor's mind was evidently not working with its
usual ease and swiftness, partly from amazement at the transformation
that had resulted in this tall slender young lady standing before him
with her stately air, and partly from rage at himself and his
unutterable stupidity.
"But you have not answered me," said the girl, obviously taken
aback at the doctor's manner. "Where is my brother? He was to meet
me. This is Cal--gar--ry, is it not?"
"It's Calgary all right," cried the doctor, glad to find in this
fact a solid resting place for his mind.
"And my brother? There is nothing wrong?" The alarm in her voice
brought him to himself.
"Wrong? Not a bit. At least, not much."
"Not much? Tell me at once, please." With an imperious air the
young lady lifted her head and impaled the doctor with her flashing
brown eyes.
"Well," said the doctor in halting confusion, "you see, he met with
an accident."
"An accident?" she cried. "You are hiding something from me, Mr.
Martin. My brother is ill, or--"
"No, no, not he. An Indian hit him on the head," said the doctor,
rendered desperate by her face.
"An Indian?" Her cry, her white face, the quick clutch of her
hands at her heart, roused the doctor's professional instincts and
banished his confusion.
"He is perfectly all right, I assure you, Miss Cameron. Only it
was better that he should have his sleep out. He was most anxious to
meet you, but as his medical adviser I urged him to remain quiet and
offered to come in his place. His wife is with him. A day's rest,
believe me, will make him quite fit." The doctor's manner was briskly
professional and helped to quiet the girl's alarm.
"Can I see him?" she asked.
"Most certainly, in a few hours when he wakes and when you are
rested. Here, Billy, take Miss Cameron's checks. Look sharp."
"Say, Doc," said Billy in an undertone, "about that tea and
toast--"
"What the deuce--?" said the doctor impatiently. "Oh, yes--all
right! Only look lively."
"Keep her a-viewin' the scenery, Doc, a bit," continued Billy under
his breath.
"Oh, get a move on, Billy! What are you monkeying about?" said the
doctor quite crossly. He was anxious to escape from a position that
had become intolerable to him. For months he had been looking forward
to this meeting and now he had bungled it. In the first place he had
begun by not knowing the girl who for three years and more had been in
his dreams day and night, then he had carried himself like a schoolboy
in her presence, and lastly had frightened her almost to death by his
clumsy announcement of her brother's accident. The young lady at his
side, with the quick intuition of her Celtic nature, felt his mood,
and, not knowing the cause, became politely distant.
On their walk to the hotel Dr. Martin pointed out the wonderful
pearly gray light stealing across the plain and beginning to brighten
on the tops of the rampart hills that surrounded the town.
"You will see the Rockies in an hour, Miss Cameron, in the far west
there," he said. But there was no enthusiasm in his voice.
"Ah, yes, how beautiful!" said the young lady. But her tone, too,
was lifeless.
Desperately the doctor strove to make conversation during their
short walk and with infinite relief did he welcome the appearance of
Mandy at her bedroom door waiting their approach.
"Your brother's wife, Miss Cameron," said he.
For a single moment they stood searching each other's souls. Then
by some secret intuition known only to the female mind they reached a
conclusion, an entirely satisfactory conclusion, too, for at once they
were in each other's arms.
"You are Moira?" cried Mandy.
"Yes," said the girl in an eager, tremulous voice. "And my
brother? Is he well?"
"Well? Of course he is--perfectly fine. He is sleeping now. We
will not wake him. He has had none too good a night."
"No, no," cried Moira, "don't wake him. Oh, I am so glad. You
see, I was afraid."
"Afraid? Why were you afraid?" inquired Mandy, looking indignantly
at the doctor, who stood back, a picture of self condemnation.
"Yes, yes, Mrs. Cameron, blame me. I deserve it all. I bungled
the whole thing this morning and frightened Miss Cameron nearly into
a fit, for no other reason than that I am all ass. Now I shall
retire. Pray deal gently with me. Good-by!" he added abruptly,
lifted his hat and was gone.
"What's the matter with him?" said Mandy, looking at her sister-in-
law.
"I do not know, I am sure," replied Moira indifferently. "Is there
anything the matter?"
"He is not like himself a bit. But come, my dear, take off your
things. As the doctor says, a sleep for a couple of hours will do
you good. After that you will see Allan. You are looking very
weary, dear, and no wonder, no wonder," said Mandy, "with all that
journey and--and all you have gone through." She gathered the girl
into her strong arms. "My, I could just pick you up like a babe!"
She held her close and kissed her.
The caressing touch was too much for the girl. With a rush the
tears came.
"Och, oh," she cried, lapsing into her Highland speech, "it iss
ashamed of myself I am, but no one has done that to me for many a day
since--since--my father--"
"There, there, you poor darling," said Mandy, comforting her as if
she were a child, "you will not want for love here in this country.
Cry away, it will do you good." There was a sound of feet on the
stairs. "Hush, hush, Billy is coming." She swept the girl into her
bedroom as Billy appeared.
"Oh, I am just silly," said Moira impatiently, as she wiped her
eyes. "But you are so good, and I will never be forgetting your
kindness to me this day."
"Hot water," said Billy, tapping at the door.
"Hot water! What for?" cried Mandy.
"For the young lady. The doctor said she was used to it."
"The doctor? Well, that is very thoughtful. Do you want hot
water, Moira?"
"Yes, the very thing I do want to get the dust out of my eyes and
the grime off my face."
"And the tea is in the ladies' parlor," added Billy.
"Tea!" cried Mandy, "the very thing!"
"The doctor said tea and toast."
"The doctor again!"
"Sure thing! Said they were all stuck on tea in the Old Country."
"Oh, he did, eh? Will you have tea, Moira?"
"No tea, thank you. I shall lie down, I think, for a little."
"All right, dear, we will see you at breakfast. Don't worry. I
shall call you."
Again she kissed the girl and left her to sleep. She found Billy
standing in the ladies' parlor with a perplexed and disappointed look
on his face.
"The Doc said she'd sure want some tea," he said.
"And you made the tea yourself?" inquired Mandy.
"Sure thing! The Doc--"
"Well, Billy, I'd just love a cup of tea if you don't mind wasting
it on me."
"Sure thing, ma'm! The Doc won't mind, bein' as she turned it
down."
"Where is Dr. Martin gone, Billy? He needs a cup of tea; he's been
up all night. He must be feeling tough."
"Judgin' by his langwidge I should surmise yes," said Billy
judicially.
"Would you get him, Billy, and bring him here?"
"Get him? S'pose I could. But as to bringin' him here, I'd prefer
wild cats myself. The last I seen of him he was hikin' for the
Rockies with a blue haze round his hair."
"But what in the world is wrong with him, Billy?" said Mandy
anxiously. "I've never seen him this way."
"No, nor me," said Billy. "The Doc's a pretty level headed cuss.
There's somethin' workin' on him, if you ask me."
"Billy, you get him and tell him we want to see him at breakfast,
will you?"
Billy shook his head.
"Tell him, Billy, I want him to see my husband then."
"Sure thing! That'll catch him, I guess. He's dead stuck on his
work."
And it did catch him, for, after breakfast was over, clean-shaven,
calm and controlled, and in his very best professional style, Dr.
Martin made his morning call on his patient. Rigidly he eliminated
from his manner anything beyond a severe professional interest.
Mandy, who for two years had served with him as nurse, and who
thought she knew his every mood, was much perplexed. Do what she
could, she was unable to break through the barrier of his
professional reserve. He was kindly courteous and perfectly correct.
"I would suggest a quiet day for him, Mrs. Cameron," was his
verdict after examining the patient. "He will be quite able to get
up in the afternoon and go about, but not to set off on a hundred and
fifty mile drive. A quiet day, sleep, cheerful company, such as you
can furnish here, will fix him up."
"Doctor, we will secure the quiet day if you will furnish the
cheerful company," said Mandy, beaming on him.
"I have a very busy day before me, and as for cheerful company,
with you two ladies he will have all the company that is good for
him."
"CHEERFUL company, you said, Doctor. If you desert us how can we
be cheerful?"
"Exactly for that reason," replied the doctor.
"Say, Martin," interposed Cameron, "take them out for a drive this
afternoon and leave me in peace."
"A drive!" cried Mandy, "with one hundred and fifty miles behind me
and another hundred and fifty miles before me!"
"A ride then," said Cameron. "Moira, you used to be fond of
riding."
"And am still," cried the girl, with sparkling eyes.
"A ride!" cried Mandy. "Great! This is the country for riding.
But have you a habit?"
"My habit is in one of my boxes," replied Moira.
"I can get a habit," said the doctor, "and two of them."
"That's settled, then," cried Mandy. "I am not very keen. We
shall do some shopping, Allan, you and I this afternoon and you two
can go off to the hills. The hills! th--ink of that, Moira, for a
highlander!" She glanced at Moira's face and read refusal there.
"But I insist you must go. A whole week in an awful stuffy train.
This is the very thing for you."
"Yes, the very thing, Moira," cried her brother. "We will have a
long talk this morning then in the afternoon we will do some business
here, Mandy and I, and you can go up the Bow."
"The Bow?"
"The Bow River. A glorious ride. Nothing like it even in
Scotland, and that's saying a good deal," said her brother with
emphasis.
This arrangement appeared to give complete satisfaction to all
parties except those most immediately interested, but there seemed to
be no very sufficient reason with either to decline, hence they
agreed.
Having once agreed to the proposal of a ride up the Bow, the doctor
lost no time in making the necessary preparations. Half an hour
later he found himself in the stable consulting with Billy. His mood
was gloomy and his language reflected his mood. Gladly would he have
escaped what to him, he felt, would be a trying and prolonged ordeal.
But he could not do this without exciting the surprise of his friends
and possibly wounding the sensitive girl whom he would gladly give his
life to serve. He resolved that at all costs he would go through with
the thing.
"I'll give her a good time, by Jingo! if I bust something," he
muttered as he walked up and down the stable picking out his mounts.
"But for a compound, double-opposed, self-adjusting jackass, I'm your
choice. Lost my first chance. Threw it clean away and queered myself
with her first shot. I say, Billy," he called, "come here."
"What's up, Doc?" said Billy.
"Kick me, Billy," said the doctor solemnly.
"Well now, Doc, I--"
"Kick me, Billy, good and swift."
"Don't believe I could give no satisfaction, Doc. But there's that
Hiram mule, he's a high class artist. You might back up to him."
"No use being kicked, Billy, by something that wouldn't appreciate
it," said Martin.
"Don't guess that way, Doc. He's an ornery cuss, he'd appreciate
it all right, that old mule. But Doc, what's eatin' you?"
"Oh, nothing, Billy, except that I'm an ass, an infernal ass."
"An ass, eh? Then I guess I couldn't give you no satisfaction.
You better try that mule."
"Well, Billy, the horses at two," said the doctor briskly, "the
broncho and that dandy little pinto."
"All serene, Doc. Hope you'll have a good time. Brace up, Doc,
it's comin' to you." Billy's wink conveyed infinitely more than his
words.
"Look here, Billy, you cut that all out," said the doctor.
"All right, Doc, if that's the way you feel. You'll see no monkey-
work on me. I'll make a preacher look like a sideshow."
And truly Billy's manner was irreproachable as he stood with the
ponies at the hotel door and helped their riders to mount. There was
an almost sad gravity in his demeanor that suggested a mind
preoccupied with solemn and unworldly thoughts with which the doctor
and his affairs had not even the remotest association.
As Cameron who, with his wife, watched their departure from the
balcony above, waved them farewell, he cried, "Keep your eyes skinned
for an Indian, Martin. Bring him in if you find him."
"I've got no gun on me," replied the doctor, "and if I get sight of
him, you hear me, I'll make for the timber quick. No heroic captures
for me this trip."
"What is all this about the Indian, Dr. Martin?" inquired the girl
at his side as they cantered down the street.
"Didn't your brother tell you?"
"No."
"Well, I've done enough to you with that Indian already to-day."
"To me?"
"Didn't I like a fool frighten you nearly to death with him?"
"Well, I was startled. I was silly to show it. But an Indian to
an Old Country person familiar with Fenimore Cooper, well--"
"Oh, I was a proper idiot all round this morning," grumbled the
doctor. "I didn't know what I was doing."
The brown eyes were open wide upon him.
"You see," continued the doctor desperately, "I'd looked forward to
meeting you for so long." The brown eyes grew wider. "And then to
think that I actually didn't know you."
"You didn't look at me," cried Moira.
"No, I was looking for the girl I saw that day, almost three years
ago, in the Glen. I have never forgotten that day."
"No, nor I," replied the girl softly. "That is how I knew you. It
was a terrible day to us all in the Glen, my brother going to leave
us and under that dreadful cloud, and you came with the letter that
cleared it all away. Oh, it was like the coming of an angel from
heaven, and I have often thought, Mr. Martin--Dr. Martin you are now,
of course--that I never thanked you as I ought that day. I was
thinking of Allan. I have often wished to do it. I should like to do
it now."
"Get at it," cried the doctor with great emphasis, "I need it. It
might help me a bit. I behaved so stupidly this morning. The truth
is, I was completely knocked out, flabbergasted."
"Was that it?" cried Moira with a bright smile. "I thought--" A
faint color tinged her pale cheek and she paused a moment. "But tell
me about the Indian. My brother just made little of it. It is his
way with me. He thinks me just a little girl not to be trusted with
things."
"He doesn't know you, then," said the doctor.
She laughed gayly. "And do you?"
"I know you better than that, at least."
"What can you know about me?"
"I know you are to be trusted with that or with anything else that
calls for nerve. Besides, sooner or later you must know about this
Indian. Wait till we cross the bridge and reach the top of the hill
yonder, it will be better going."
The hillside gave them a stiff scramble, for the trail went
straight up. But the sure-footed ponies, scrambling over stones and
gravel, reached the top safely, with no worse result than an obvious
disarrangement of the girl's hair, so that around the Scotch bonnet
which she had pinned on her head the little brown curls were peeping
in a way that quite shook the heart of Dr. Martin.
"Now you look a little more like yourself," he cried, his eyes
fastened upon the curls with unmistakable admiration, "more like the
girl I remember."
"Oh," she said, "it is my bonnet. I put on this old thing for the
ride."
"No," said the doctor, "you wore no bonnet that day. It is your
face, your hair, you are not quite--so--so proper."
"My hair!" Her hands went up to her head. "Oh, my silly curls, I
suppose. They are my bane." ("My joy," the doctor nearly had said.)
"But now for the Indian story."
Then the doctor grew grave.
"It is not a pleasant thing to greet a guest with," he said, "but
you must know it and I may as well give it to you. And, mind you,
this is altogether a new thing with us."
For the next half hour as they rode westward toward the big hills,
steadily climbing as they went, the story of the disturbance in the
north country, of the unrest among the Indians, of the part played in
it by the Indian Copperhead, and of the appeal by the Superintendent
to Cameron for assistance, furnished the topic for conversation. The
girl listened with serious face, but there was no fear in the brown
eyes, nor tremor in the quiet voice, as they talked it over.
"Now let us forget it for a while," cried the doctor. "The Police
have rarely, if ever, failed to get their man. That is their boast.
And they will get this chap, too. And as for the row on the
Saskatchewan, I don't take much stock in that. Now we're coming to a
view in a few minutes, one of the finest I have seen anywhere."
For half a mile farther they loped along the trail that led them to
the top of a hill that stood a little higher than the others round
about. Upon the hilltop they drew rein.
"What do you think of that for a view?" said the doctor.
Before them stretched the wide valley of the Bow for many miles,
sweeping up toward the mountains, with rounded hills on either side,
and far beyond the hills the majestic masses of the Rockies some fifty
miles away, snow-capped, some of them, and here and there upon their
faces the great glaciers that looked like patches of snow. Through
this wide valley wound the swift flowing Bow, and up from it on either
side the hills, rough with rocks and ragged masses of pine, climbed
till they seemed to reach the very bases of the mountains beyond.
Over all the blue arch of sky spanned the wide valley and seemed to
rest upon the great ranges on either side, like the dome of a vast
cathedral.
Silent, with lips parted and eyes alight with wonder, Moira sat and
gazed upon the glory of that splendid scene.
"What do you think--" began the doctor.
She put out her hand and touched his arm.
"Please don't speak," she breathed, "this is not for words, but for
worship."
Long she continued to gaze in rapt silence upon the picture spread
out before her. It was, indeed, a place for worship. She pointed to
a hill some distance in front of them.
"You have been beyond that?" she asked in a hushed voice.
"Yes, I have been all through this country. I know it well. From
the top of that hill we get a magnificent sweep toward the south."
"Let us go!" she cried.
Down the hillside they scrambled, across a little valley and up the
farther side, following the trail that wound along the hill but
declined to make the top. As they rounded the shoulder of the little
mountain Moira cried:
"It would be a great view from the top there beyond the trees. Can
we reach it?"
"Are you good for a climb?" replied the doctor. "We could tie the
horses."
For answer she flung herself from her pinto and, gathering up her
habit, began eagerly to climb. By the time the doctor had tethered
the ponies she was half way to the top. Putting forth all his energy
he raced after her, and together they parted a screen of brushwood and
stepped out on a clear rock that overhung the deep canyon that
broadened into a great valley sweeping toward the south.
"Beats Scotland, eh?" cried the doctor, as they stepped out
together.
She laid her hand upon his arm and drew him back into the bushes.
"Hush," she whispered. Surprised into silence, he stood gazing at
her. Her face was white and her eyes gleaming. "An Indian down
there," she whispered.
"An Indian? Where? Show me."
"He was looking up at us. Come this way. I think he heard us."
She led him by a little detour and on their hands and knees they
crept through the brushwood. They reached the open rock and peered
down through a screen of bushes into the canyon below.
"There he is," cried Moira.
Across the little stream that flowed at the bottom of the canyon,
and not more than a hundred yards away, stood an Indian, tall,
straight and rigidly attent, obviously listening and gazing steadily
at the point where they had first stood. For many minutes he stood
thus rigid while they watched him. Then his attitude relaxed. He sat
down upon the rocky ledge that sloped up from the stream toward a
great overhanging crag behind him, laid his rifle beside him and,
calmly filling his pipe, began to smoke. Intently they followed his
every movement.
"I do believe it is our Indian," whispered the doctor.
"Oh, if we could only get him!" replied the girl.
The doctor glanced swiftly at her. Her face was pale but firm set
with resolve. Quickly he revolved in his mind the possibilities.
"If I only had a gun," he said to himself, "I'd risk it."
"What is he going to do?"
The Indian was breaking off some dead twigs from the standing pines
about him.
"He's going to light a fire," replied the doctor, "perhaps camp for
the night."
"Then," cried the girl in an excited whisper, "we could get him."
The doctor smiled at her. The Indian soon had his fire going and,
unrolling his blanket pack, he took thence what looked like a lump of
meat, cut some strips from it and hung them from pointed sticks over
the fire. He proceeded to gather some poles from the dead wood lying
about.
"What now is he going to do?" inquired Moira.
"Wait," replied the doctor.
The Indian proceeded to place the poles in order against the rock,
keeping his eye on the toasting meat the while and now and again
turning it before the fire. Then he began to cut branches of spruce
and balsam.
"By the living Jingo!" cried the doctor, greatly excited, "I
declare he's going to camp."
"To sleep?" said Moira.
"Yes," replied the doctor. "He had no sleep last night."
"Then," cried the girl, "we can get him."
The doctor gazed at her in admiration.
"You are a brick," he said. "How can we get him? He'd double me
up like a jack-knife. Remember I only played quarter," he added.
"No, no," she cried quickly, "you stay here to watch him. Let me
go back for the Police."
"I say," cried the doctor, "you are a wonder. There's something in
that." He thought rapidly, then said, "No, it won't do. I can't
allow you to risk it."
"Risk? Risk what?"
A year ago the doctor would not have hesitated a moment to allow
her to go, but now he thought of the roving bands of Indians and the
possibility of the girl falling into their hands.
"No, Miss Cameron, it will not do."
"But think," she cried, "we might get him and save Allan all the
trouble and perhaps his life. You must not stop me. You cannot stop
me. I am going. You wait and watch. Don't move. I can find my
way."
He seized her by the arm.
"Wait," he said, "let me think."
"What danger can there be?" she pleaded. "It is broad daylight.
The road is good. I cannot possibly lose my way. I am used to
riding alone among the hills at home."
"Ah, yes, at home," said the doctor gloomily.
"But there is no danger," she persisted. "I am not afraid.
Besides, you cannot keep me." She stood up among the bushes looking
down at him with a face so fiercely resolved that he was constrained
to say, "By Jove! I don't believe I could. But I can go with you."
"You would not do that," she cried, stamping her foot, "if I
forbade you. It is your duty to stay here and watch that Indian. It
is mine to go and get the Police. Good-by."
He rose to follow her.
"No," she said, "I forbid you to come. You are not doing right.
You are to stay. We will save my brother."
She glided through the bushes from his sight and was gone.
"Am I a fool or what?" said the doctor to himself. "She is taking
a chance, but after all it is worth while."
It was now the middle of the afternoon and it would take Moira an
hour and a half over that rocky winding trail to make the ten miles
that lay before her. Ten minutes more would see the Police started
on their return. The doctor settled himself down to his three hours'
wait, keeping his eye fixed upon the Indian. The latter was now busy
with his meal, which he ate ravenously.
"The beggar has me tied up tight," muttered the doctor ruefully.
"My grub is on my saddle, and I guess I dare not smoke till he lights
up himself."
A hand touched his arm. Instantly he was on his feet. It was
Moira.
"Great Caesar, you scared me! Thought it was the whole Blackfoot
tribe."
"You will be the better for something to eat," she said simply,
handing him the lunch basket. "Good-by."
"Hold up!" he cried. But she was gone.
"Say, she's a regular--" He paused and thought for a moment.
"She's an angel, that's what--and a mighty sight better than most of
them. She's a--" He turned back to his watch, leaving his thought
unspoken. In the presence of the greater passions words are woefully
inadequate.
The Indian was still eating as ravenously as ever.
"He's filling up, I guess. He ought to be full soon at that rate.
Wish he'd get his pipe agoing."
In due time the Indian finished eating, rolled up the fragments
carefully in a rag, and then proceeded to construct with the poles
and brush which he had cut, a penthouse against the rock. At one end
his little shelter thus constructed ran into a spruce tree whose thick
branches reached right to the ground. When he had completed this
shelter to his satisfaction he sat down again on the rock beside his
smoldering fire and pulled out his pipe.
"Thanks be!" said the doctor to himself fervently. "Go on, old
boy, hit her up."
A pipe and then another the Indian smoked, then, taking his gun,
blanket and pack, he crawled into his brush wigwam out of sight.
"There, you old beggar!" said the doctor with a sigh of relief.
"You are safe for an hour or two, thank goodness. You had no sleep
last night and you've got to make up for it now. Sleep tight, old
boy. We'll give you a call." The doctor hugged himself with supreme
satisfaction and continued to smoke with his eye fixed upon the hole
into which the Indian had disappeared.
Through the long hours he sat and smoked while he formulated the
plan of attack which he proposed to develop when his reinforcements
should arrive.
"We will work up behind him from away down the valley, a couple of
us will cover him from the front and the others go right in."
He continued with great care to make and revise his plans, and
while in the midst of his final revision a movement in the bushes
behind him startled him to his feet. The bushes parted and the face
of Moira appeared with that of her brother over her shoulder.
"Is he still there?" she whispered eagerly.
"Asleep, snug as a bug. Never moved," said the doctor exultantly,
and proceeded to explain his plan of attack. "How many have you?" he
asked Cameron.
"Crisp and a constable."
"Just two?" said the doctor.
"Two," replied Cameron briefly. "That's plenty. Here they are."
He stepped back through the bushes and brought forward Crisp and the
constable. "Now, then, here's our plan," he said. "You, Crisp, will
go down the canyon, cross the stream and work up on the other side
right to that rock. When you arrive at the rock the constable and I
will go in. The doctor will cover him from this side."
"Fine!" said the doctor. "Fine, except that I propose to go in
myself with you. He's a devil to fight. I could see that last
night."
Cameron hesitated.
"There's really no use, you know, Doctor. The constable and I can
handle him."
Moira stood looking eagerly from one to the other.
"All right," said the doctor, "'nuff said. Only I'm going in. If
you want to come along, suit yourself."
"Oh, do be careful," said Moira, clasping her hands. "Oh, I'm
afraid."
"Afraid?" said the doctor, looking at her quickly. "You? Not much
fear in you, I guess."
"Come on, then," said Cameron. "Moira, you stay here and keep your
eye on him. You are safe enough here."
She pressed her lips tight together till they made a thin red line
in her white face.
"Can you let me have a gun?" she asked.
"A gun?" exclaimed the doctor.
"Oh, she can shoot--rabbits, at least," said her brother with a
smile. "I shall bring you one, Moira, but remember, handle it
carefully."
With a gun across her knees Moira sat and watched the development
of the attack. For many minutes there was no sign or sound, till she
began to wonder if a change had been made in the plan. At length some
distance down the canyon and on the other side Sergeant Crisp was seen
working his way with painful care step by step toward the rock of
rendezvous. There was no sign of her brother or Dr. Martin. It was
for them she watched with an intensity of anxiety which she could not
explain to herself. At length Sergeant Crisp reached the crag against
whose base the penthouse leaned in which the sleeping Indian lay.
Immediately she saw her brother, quickly followed by Dr. Martin, leap
the little stream, run lightly up the sloping rock and join Crisp at
the crag. Still there was no sign from the Indian. She saw her
brother motion the Sergeant round to the farther corner of the
penthouse where it ran into the spruce tree, while he himself, with a
revolver in each hand, dropped on one knee and peered under the
leaning poles. With a loud exclamation he sprang to his feet.
"He's gone!" he shouted. "Stand where you are!" Like a hound on a
scent he ran to the back of the spruce tree and on his knees examined
the earth there. In a few moments his search was rewarded. He struck
the trail and followed it round the rock and through the woods till he
came to the hard beaten track. Then he came back, pale with rage and
disappointment. "He's gone!" he said.
"I swear he never came out of that hole!" said Dr. Martin. "I kept
my eye on it every minute of the last three hours."
"There's another hole," said Crisp, "under the tree here."
Cameron said not a word. His disappointment was too keen.
Together they retraced their steps across the little stream. On the
farther bank they found Moira, who had raced down to meet them.
"He's gone?" she cried.
"Gone!" echoed her brother. "Gone for this time--but--some day--
some day," he added below his breath.
But many things were to happen before that day came.
Overhead the stars were still twinkling far in the western sky.
The crescent moon still shone serene, marshaling her attendant
constellations. Eastward the prairie still lay in deep shadow, its
long rolls outlined by the deeper shadows lying in the hollows
between. Over the Bow and the Elbow mists hung like white veils
swathing the faces of the rampart hills north and south. In the
little town a stillness reigned as of death, for at length Calgary
was asleep, and sound asleep would remain for hours to come.
Not so the world about. Through the dead stillness of the waning
night the liquid note of the adventurous meadow lark fell like the
dropping of a silver stream into the pool below. Brave little heart,
roused from slumber perchance by domestic care, perchance by the first
burdening presage of the long fall flight waiting her sturdy careless
brood, perchance stirred by the first thrill of the Event approaching
from the east. For already in the east the long round tops of the
prairie undulations are shining gray above the dark hollows and faint
bars of light are shooting to the zenith, fearless forerunners of the
dawn, menacing the retreating stars still bravely shining their pale
defiance to the oncoming of their ancient foe. Far toward the west
dark masses still lie invincible upon the horizon, but high above in
the clear heavens white shapes, indefinite and unattached, show where
stand the snow-capped mountain peaks. Thus the swift and silent
moments mark the fortunes of this age-long conflict. But sudden all
heaven and all earth thrill tremulous in eager expectancy of the daily
miracle when, all unaware, the gray light in the eastern horizon over
the roll of the prairie has grown to silver, and through the silver a
streamer of palest rose has flashed up into the sky, the gay and
gallant 'avant courier' of an advancing host, then another and
another, then by tens and hundreds, till, radiating from a center yet
unseen, ten thousand times ten thousand flaming flaunting banners
flash into orderly array and possess the utmost limits of the heavens,
sweeping before them the ever paling stars, that indomitable rearguard
of the flying night, proclaiming to all heaven and all earth the King
is come, the Monarch of the Day. Flushed in the new radiance of the
morning, the long flowing waves of the prairie, the tumbling hills,
the mighty rocky peaks stand surprised, as if caught all unprepared by
the swift advance, trembling and blushing in the presence of the
triumphant King, waiting the royal proclamation that it is time to
wake and work, for the day is come.
All oblivious of this wondrous miracle stands Billy, his powers of
mind and body concentrated upon a single task, that namely of holding
down to earth the game little bronchos, Mustard and Pepper, till the
party should appear. Nearby another broncho, saddled and with the
knotted reins hanging down from his bridle, stood viewing with all too
obvious contempt the youthful frolics of the colts. Well he knew that
life would cure them of all this foolish waste of spirit and of
energy. Meantime on his part he was content to wait till his
master--Dr. Martin, to wit--should give the order to move. His master
meantime was busily engaged with clever sinewy fingers packing in the
last parcels that represented the shopping activities of Cameron and
his wife during the past two days. There was a whole living and
sleeping outfit for the family to gather together. Already a heavily
laden wagon had gone on before them. The building material for the
new house was to follow, for it was near the end of September and a
tent dwelling, while quite endurable, does not lend itself to comfort
through a late fall in the foothill country. Besides, there was upon
Cameron, and still more upon his wife, the ever deepening sense of a
duty to be done that could not wait, and for the doing of that duty
due preparation must be made. Hence the new house must be built and
its simple appointments and furnishings set in order without delay,
and hence the laden wagon gone before and the numerous packages in the
democrat, covered with a new tent and roped securely into place.
This packing and roping the doctor made his peculiar care, for he
was a true Canadian, born and bred in the atmosphere of pioneer days
in old Ontario, and the packing and roping could be trusted to no
amateur hands, for there were hills to go up and hills to go down,
sleughs to cross and rivers to ford with all their perilous
contingencies before they should arrive at the place where they would
be.
"All secure, Martin?" said Cameron, coming out from the hotel with
hand bags and valises.
"They'll stay, I think," replied the doctor, "unless those bronchos
of yours get away from you."
"Aren't they dears, Billy?" cried Moira, coming out at the moment
and dancing over to the bronchos' heads.
"Well, miss," said Billy with judicial care, "I don't know about
that. They're ornery little cusses and mean-actin.' They'll go
straight enough if everything is all right, but let anythin' go
wrong, a trace or a line, and they'll put it to you good and hard."
"I do not think I would be afraid of them," replied the girl,
reaching out her hand to stroke Pepper's nose, a movement which
surprised that broncho so completely that he flew back violently upon
the whiffle-tree, carrying Billy with him.
"Come up here, you beast!" said Billy, giving him a fierce yank.
"Oh, Billy!" expostulated Moira.
"Oh, he ain't no lady's maid, miss. You would, eh, you young
devil,"--this to Pepper, whose intention to walk over Billy was only
too obvious--"Get back there, will you! Now then, take that, and
stand still!" Billy evidently did not rely solely upon the law of
love in handling his broncho.
Moira abandoned him and climbed to her place in the democrat
between Cameron and his wife.
By a most singular and fortunate coincidence Dr. Martin had learned
that a patient of his at Big River was in urgent need of a call, so,
to the open delight of the others and to the subdued delight of the
doctor, he was to ride with them thus far on their journey.
"All set, Billy?" cried Cameron. "Let them go."
"Good-by, Billy," cried both ladies, to which Billy replied with a
wave of his Stetson.
Away plunged the bronchos on a dead gallop, as if determined to end
the journey during the next half hour at most, and away with them
went the doctor upon his steady broncho, the latter much annoyed at
being thus ignominiously outdistanced by these silly colts and so
induced to strike a somewhat more rapid pace than he considered wise
at the beginning of an all-day journey. Away down the street between
the silent shacks and stores and out among the straggling residences
that lined the trail. Away past the Indian encampment and the Police
Barracks. Away across the echoing bridge, whose planks resounded like
the rattle of rifles under the flying hoofs. Away up the long stony
hill, scrambling and scrabbling, but never ceasing till they reached
the level prairie at the top. Away upon the smooth resilient trail
winding like a black ribbon over the green bed of the prairie. Away
down long, long slopes to low, wide valleys, and up long, long slopes
to the next higher prairie level. Away across the plain skirting
sleughs where ducks of various kinds, and in hundreds, quacked and
plunged and fought joyously and all unheeding. Away with the morning
air, rare and wondrously exhilarating, rushing at them and past them
and filling their hearts with the keen zest of living. Away beyond
sight and sound of the great world, past little shacks, the brave
vanguard of civilization, whose solitary loneliness only served to
emphasize their remoteness from the civilization which they heralded.
Away from the haunts of men and through the haunts of wild things
where the shy coyote, his head thrown back over his shoulder, loped
laughing at them and their futile noisy speed. Away through the wide
rich pasture lands where feeding herds of cattle and bands of horses
made up the wealth of the solitary rancher, whose low-built wandering
ranch house proclaimed at once his faith and his courage. Away and
ever away, the shining morning hours and the fleeting miles racing
with them, till by noon-day, all wet but still unweary, the bronchos
drew up at the Big River Stopping Place, forty miles from the point of
their departure.
Close behind the democrat rode Dr. Martin, the steady pace of his
wise old broncho making up upon the dashing but somewhat erratic gait
of the colts.
While the ladies passed into the primitive Stopping Place, the men
unhitched the ponies, stripped off their harness and proceeded to rub
them down from head to heel, wash out their mouths and remove from
them as far as they could by these attentions the travel marks of the
last six hours.
Big River could hardly be called even by the generous estimate of
the optimistic westerner a town. It consisted of a blacksmith's
shop, with which was combined the Post Office, a little school, which
did for church--the farthest outpost of civilization--and a manse,
simple, neat and tiny, but with a wondrous air of comfort about it,
and very like the little Nova Scotian woman inside, who made it a very
vestibule of heaven for many a cowboy and rancher in the district, and
last, the Stopping Place run by a man who had won the distinction of
being well known to the Mounted Police and who bore the suggestive
name of Hell Gleeson, which appeared, however, in the old English
Registry as Hellmuth Raymond Gleeson. The Mounted Police thought it
worth while often to run in upon Hell at unexpected times, and more
than once they had found it necessary to invite him to contribute to
Her Majesty's revenue as compensation for Hell's objectionable habit
of having in possession and of retailing to his friends bad whisky
without attending to the little formality of a permit.
The Stopping Place was a rambling shack, or rather a series of
shacks, loosely joined together, whose ramifications were found by
Hell and his friends to be useful in an emergency. The largest room
in the building was the bar, as it was called. Behind the counter,
however, instead of the array of bottles and glasses usually found in
rooms bearing this name, the shelf was filled with patent medicines,
chiefly various brands of pain-killer. Off the bar was the
dining-room, and behind the dining-room another and smaller room,
while the room most retired in the collection of shacks constituting
the Stopping Place was known in the neighborhood as the "snake room,"
a room devoted to those unhappy wretches who, under the influence of
prolonged indulgence in Hell's bad whisky, were reduced to such a
mental and nervous condition that the landscape of their dreams became
alive with snakes of various sizes, shapes and hues.
To Mandy familiarity had hardened her sensibilities to endurance of
all the grimy uncleanness of the place, but to Moira the appearance
of the house and especially of the dining-room filled her with
loathing unspeakable.
"Oh, Mandy," she groaned, "can we not eat outside somewhere? This
is terrible."
Mandy thought for a moment.
"No," she cried, "but we will do better. I know Mrs. Macintyre in
the manse. I nursed her once last spring. We will go and see her."
"Oh, that would not do," said Moira, her Scotch shy independence
shrinking from such an intrusion.
"And why not?"
"She doesn't know me--and there are four of us."
"Oh, nonsense, you don't know this country. You don't know what
our visit will mean to the little woman, what a joy it will be to her
to see a new face, and I declare when she hears you are new out from
Scotland she will simply revel in you. We are about to confer a great
favor upon Mrs. Macintyre."
If Moira had any lingering doubts as to the soundness of her
sister-in-law's opinion they vanished before the welcome she had from
the minister's wife.
"Mr. Cameron's sister?" she cried, with both hands extended, "and
just out from Scotland? And where from? From near Braemar? And our
folk came from near Inverness. Mhail Gaelic heaibh?"
"Go dearbh ha."
And on they went for some minutes in what Mrs. Macintyre called
"the dear old speech," till Mrs. Macintyre, remembering herself, said
to Mandy:
"But you do not understand the Gaelic? Well, well, you will
forgive us. And to think that in this far land I should find a young
lady like this to speak it to me! Do you know, I am forgetting it out
here." All the while she was speaking she was laying the cloth and
setting the table. "And you have come all the way from Calgary this
morning? What a drive for the young lady! You must be tired out.
Would you lie down upon the bed for an hour? Then come away in to
the bedroom and fresh yourselves up a bit. Come away in. I'll get
Mr. Cameron over."
"We are a big party," said Mandy, "for your wee house. We have a
friend with us--Dr. Martin."
"Dr. Martin? Indeed I know him well, and a fine man he is and that
kind and clever. I'll get him too."
"Let me go for them," said Mandy.
"Very well, go then. I'll just hurry the dinner."
"But are you quite sure," asked Mandy, "you can--you have
everything handy? You know, Mrs. Macintyre, I know just how hard it
is to keep a stock of everything on hand."
"Well, we have bread and molasses--our butter is run out, it is
hard to get--and some bacon and potatoes and tea. Will that do?"
"Oh, that will do fine. And we have some things with us, if you
don't mind."
"Mind? Not a bit, my dear. You can just suit yourself."
The dinner was a glorious success. The clean linen, the shining
dishes, the silver--for Mrs. Macintyre brought out her wedding
presents--gave the table a brilliantly festive appearance in the eyes
of those who had lived for some years in the western country.
"You don't appreciate the true significance of a table napkin, I
venture to say, Miss Cameron," said the doctor, "until you have lived
a year in this country at least, or how much an unspotted table cloth
means, or shining cutlery and crockery."
"Well, I have been two days at the Royal Hotel, whatever," replied
Moira.
"The Royal Hotel!" exclaimed the doctor aghast. "Our most palatial
Western hostelry--all the comforts and conveniences of civilization!"
"Anyway, I like this better," said Moira. "It is like home."
"Is it, indeed, my dear?" said the minister's wife greatly
delighted. "You have paid me a very fine tribute."
The hour lengthened into two, for when a departure was suggested
the doctor grew eloquent in urging delay. The horses would be all
the better for the rest. It would be fine driving in the evening.
They could easily make the Black Dog Ford before dark. After that
the trail was good for twenty miles, where they would camp. But like
all happy hours these hours fled past, and all too swiftly, and soon
the travelers were ready to depart.
Before the Stopping Place door Hell was holding down the bronchos,
while Cameron was packing in the valises and making all secure again.
Near the wagon stood the doctor waiting their departure.
"You are going back from here, Dr. Martin?" said Moira.
"Yes," said the doctor, "I am going back."
"It has been good to see you," she said. "I hope next time you
will know me."
"Ah, now, Miss Cameron, don't rub it in. You see--but what's the
use?" continued the doctor. "You had changed. My picture of the
girl I had seen in the Highlands that day never changed and never
will change." The doctor's keen gray eyes burned into hers for a
moment. A slight flush came to her cheek and she found herself
embarrassed for want of words. Her embarrassment was relieved by the
sound of hoofs pounding down the trail.
"Hello, who's this?" said the doctor, as they stood watching the
horseman approaching at a rapid pace and accompanied by a cloud of
dust. Nearer and nearer he came, still on the gallop till within a
few yards of the group.
"My!" cried Moira. "Whoever he is he will run us down!" and she
sprang into her place in the democrat.
Without slackening rein the rider came up to the Stopping Place
door at a full gallop, then at a single word his horse planted his
four feet solidly on the trail, and, plowing up the dirt, came to a
standstill; then, throwing up his magnificent head, he gave a loud
snort and stood, a perfect picture of equine beauty.
"Oh, what a horse!" breathed Moira. "How perfectly splendid! And
what a rider!" she added. "Do you know him?"
"I do not," said the doctor, conscious of a feeling of hostility to
the stranger, and all the more because he was forced to acknowledge
to himself that the rider and his horse made a very striking picture.
The man was tall and sinewy, with dark, clean-cut face, thin lips,
firm chin and deep-set, brown-gray eyes that glittered like steel, and
with that unmistakable something in his bearing that suggested the
breeding of a gentleman. His horse was as distinguished as its rider.
His coal black skin shone like silk, his flat legs, sloping hips,
well-ribbed barrel, small head, large, flashing eyes, all proclaimed
his high breeding.
"What a beauty! What a beauty!" breathed Moira again to the
doctor.
As if in answer to her praise the stranger, raising his Stetson,
swept her an elaborate bow, and, touching his horse, moved nearer to
the door of the Stopping Place and swung himself to the ground.
"Ah, Cameron, it's you, sure enough. I can hardly believe my good
fortune."
"Hello, Raven, that you?" said Cameron indifferently. "Hope you
are fit?" But he made no motion to offer his hand nor did he
introduce him to the company. At the sound of his name Dr. Martin
started and swept his keen eyes over the stranger's face. He had
heard that name before.
"Fit?" inquired the stranger whom Cameron had saluted as Raven.
"Fit as ever," a hard smile curling his lips as he noted Cameron's
omission. "Hello, Hell!" he continued, his eyes falling upon that
individual, who was struggling with the restive ponies, "how goes it
with your noble self?"
Hastily Hell, leaving the bronchos for the moment, responded,
"Hello, Mr. Raven, mighty glad to see you!"
Meantime the bronchos, freed from Hell's supervision, and
apparently interested in the strange horse who was viewing them with
lordly disdain, turned their heads and took the liberty of sniffing at
the newcomer. Instantly, with mouth wide open and ears flat on his
head, the black horse rushed at the bronchos. With a single bound
they were off, the lines trailing in the dust. Together Hell, Cameron
and the doctor sprang for the wagon, but before they could touch it it
was whisked from underneath their fingers as the bronchos dashed in a
mad gallop down the trail, Moira meantime clinging desperately to the
seat of the pitching wagon. After them darted Cameron and for some
moments it seemed as if he could overtake the flying ponies, but
gradually they drew away and he gave up the chase. After him followed
the whole company, his wife, the doctor, Hell, all in a blind horror
of helplessness.
"My God! My God!" cried Cameron, his breath coming in sobbing
gasps. "The cut bank!"
Hardly were the words out of his mouth when Raven came up at an
easy canter.
"Don't worry," he said quietly to Mandy, who was wringing her hands
in despair, "I'll get them."
Like a swallow for swiftness and for grace, the black stallion sped
away, flattening his body to the trail as he gathered speed. The
bronchos had a hundred yards of a start, but they had not run another
hundred until the agonized group of watchers could see that the
stallion was gaining rapidly upon them.
"He'll get 'em," cried Hell, "he'll get 'em, by gum!"
"But can he turn them from the bank?" groaned Mandy.
"If anything in horse-flesh or man-flesh can do it," said Hell,
"it'll be done."
But a tail-race is a long race and a hundred yards' start is a
serious handicap in a quarter of a mile. Down the sloping trail the
bronchos were running savagely, their noses close to earth, their feet
on the hard ground like the roar of a kettledrum, their harness and
trappings fluttering over their backs, the wagon pitching like a ship
in a gale, the girl clinging to its high seat as a sailor to a swaying
mast. Behind, and swiftly drawing level with the flying bronchos,
sped the black horse, still with that smooth grace of a skimming
swallow and with such ease of motion as made it seem as if he could
readily have increased his speed had he so chosen.
"My God! why doesn't he send the brute along?" cried Dr. Martin,
his stark face and staring eyes proclaiming his agony.
"He is up! He is up!" cried Cameron.
The agonized watchers saw the rider lean far over the bronchos and
seize one line, then gradually begin to turn the flying ponies away
from the cut bank and steer them in a wide circle across the prairie.
"Thank God! Thank God! Oh, thank God!" cried the doctor brokenly,
wiping the sweat from his face.
"Let us go to head them off," said Cameron, setting off at a run,
leaving the doctor and his wife to follow.
As they watched with staring eyes the racing horses they saw Raven
bring back the line to the girl clinging to the wagon seat, then the
black stallion, shooting in front of the ponies, began to slow down
upon them, hampering their running till they were brought to an easy
canter, and, under the more active discipline of teeth and hoofs, were
forced to a trot and finally brought to a standstill, and so held till
Cameron and the doctor came up to them.
"Raven," gasped Cameron, fighting for his breath and coming forward
with hand outstretched, "you have--done--a great thing--to-day--for
me. I shall not--forget it."
"Tut tut, Cameron, simple thing. I fancy you are still a few
points ahead," said Raven, taking his hand in a strong grip. "After
all, it was Night Hawk did it."
"You saved--my sister's life," continued Cameron, still struggling
for breath.
"Perhaps, perhaps, but I don't forget," and here Raven leaned over
his saddle and spoke in a lower voice, "I don't forget the day you
saved mine, my boy."
"Come," said Cameron, "let me present you to my sister."
Instantly Raven swung himself from his horse.
"Stand, Night Hawk!" he commanded, and the horse stood like a
soldier on guard.
"Moira," said Cameron, still panting hard, "this is--my friend--Mr.
Raven."
Raven stood bowing before her with his hat in his hand, but the
girl leaned far down from her seat with both hands outstretched.
"I thank you, Mr. Raven," she said in a quiet voice, but her brown
eyes were shining like stars in her white face. "You are a wonderful
rider."
"I could not have done it, Miss Cameron," said Raven, a wonderfully
sweet smile lighting up his hard face, "I could not have done it had
you ever lost your nerve."
"I had no fear after I saw your face," said the girl simply. "I
knew you could do it."
"Ah, and how did you know that?" His gray-brown eyes searched her
face more keenly.
"I cannot tell. I just knew."
"Let me introduce my friend, Dr. Martin," said Cameron as the
doctor came up.
"I--too--want to thank you--Mr. Raven," said the doctor, seizing
him with both hands. "I never can--we never can forget it--or repay
you."
"Oh," said Raven, with a careless laugh, "what else could I do?
After all it was Night Hawk did the trick." He lifted his hat again
to Moira, bowed with a beautiful grace, threw himself on his horse and
stood till the two men, after carefully examining the harness and
securing the reins, had climbed to their places on the wagon seat.
Then he trotted on before toward the Stopping Place, where the
minister's wife and indeed the whole company of villagers awaited
them.
"Oh, isn't he wonderful!" cried Moira, with her eyes upon the rider
in front of them. "And he did it so easily." But the men sat
silent. "Who is he, Allan? You know him."
"Yes--he is--he is a chap I met when I was on the Force."
"A Policeman?"
"No, no," replied her brother hastily.
"What then? Does he live here?"
"He lives somewhere south. Don't know exactly where he lives."
"What is he? A rancher?"
"A rancher? Ah--yes, yes, he is a rancher I fancy. Don't know
very well. That is--I have seen little of him--in fact--only a
couple of times--or so."
"He seems to know you, Allan," said his sister a little
reproachfully. "Anyway," she continued with a deep breath, "he is
just splendid." Dr. Martin glanced at her face glowing with
enthusiasm and was shamefully conscious of a jealous pang at his
heart. "He is just splendid," continued Moira, with growing
enthusiasm, "and I mean to know more of him."
"What?" said her brother sharply, as if waking from a dream.
"Nonsense, Moira! You do not know what you are talking about. You
must not speak like that."
"And why, pray?" asked his sister in surprise.
"Oh, never mind just now, Moira. In this country we don't take up
with strangers."
"Strangers?" echoed the girl, pain mingling with her surprise.
"And yet he saved my life!"
"Yes, thank God, he saved your life," cried her brother, "and we
shall never cease to be grateful to him, but--but--oh, drop it just
now please, Moira. You don't know and--here we are. How white Mandy
is. What a terrible experience for us all!"
"Terrible indeed," echoed the doctor.
"Terrible?" said Moira. "It might have been worse."
To this neither made reply, but there came a day when both doubted
such a possibility.
The short September day was nearly gone. The sun still rode above
the great peaks that outlined the western horizon. Already the
shadows were beginning to creep up the eastern slope of the hills
that clambered till they reached the bases of the great mountains. A
purple haze hung over mountain, hill and rolling plain, softening the
sharp outlines that ordinarily defined the features of the foothill
landscape.
With the approach of evening the fierce sun heat had ceased and a
fresh cooling western breeze from the mountain passes brought welcome
refreshment alike to the travelers and their beasts, wearied with
their three days' drive.
"That is the last hill, Moira," cried her sister-in-law, pointing
to a long slope before them. "The very last, I promise you. From
the top we can see our home. Our home, alas, I had forgotten! There
is no home there, only a black spot on the prairie."
Her husband grunted savagely and cut sharply at the bronchos.
"But the tent will be fine, Mandy. I just long for the
experience," said Moira.
"Yes, but just think of all my pretty things, and some of Allan's
too, all gone."
"Were the pipes burned, Allan?" cried Moira with a sudden anxiety.
"Were they, Mandy? I never thought," said Cameron.
"The pipes? Let me see. No--no--you remember, Allan, young--
what's his name?--that young Highlander at the Fort wanted them."
"Sure enough--Macgregor," said her husband in a tone of immense
relief.
"Yes, young Mr. Macgregor."
"My, but that is fine, Allan," said his sister. "I should have
grieved if we could not hear the pipes again among these hills. Oh,
it is all so bonny; just look at the big Bens yonder."
It was, as she said, all bonny. Far toward their left the low
hills rolled in soft swelling waves toward the level prairie, and far
away to the right the hills climbed by sharper ascents, flecked here
and there with dark patches of fir, and broken with jutting ledges of
gray limestone, climbed till they reached the great Rockies, majestic
in their massive serried ranges that pierced the western sky. And all
that lay between, the hills, the hollows, the rolling prairie, was
bathed in a multitudinous riot of color that made a scene of
loveliness beyond power of speech to describe.
"Oh, Allan, Allan," cried his sister, "I never thought to see
anything as lovely as the Cuagh Oir, but this is up to it I do
believe."
"It must indeed be lovely, then," said her brother with a smile,
"if you can say that. And I am glad you like it. I was afraid that
you might not."
"Here we are, just at the top," cried Mandy. "In a minute beyond
the shoulder there we shall see the Big Horn Valley and the place
where our home used to be. There, wait Allan."
The ponies came to a stand. Exclamations of amazement burst from
Cameron and his wife.
"Why, Allan? What? Is this the trail?"
"It is the trail all right," said her husband in a low voice, "but
what in thunder does this mean?"
"It is a house, Allan, a new house."
"It looks like it--but--"
"And there are people all about!"
For some breathless moments they gazed upon the scene. A wide
valley, flanked by hills and threaded by a gleaming river, lay before
them and in a bend of the river against the gold and yellow of a
poplar bluff stood a log house of comfortable size gleaming in all its
newness fresh from the ax and saw.
"What does it all mean, Allan?" inquired his wife.
"Blest if I know!"
"Look at the people. I know now, Allan. It's a 'raising bee.' A
raising bee!" she cried with growing enthusiasm. "You remember them
in Ontario. It's a bee, sure enough. Oh, hurry, let's go!"
The bronchos seemed to catch her excitement, their weariness
disappeared, and, pulling hard on the bit, they tore down the winding
trail as if at the beginning rather than at the end of their hundred
and fifty mile drive.
"What a size!" cried Mandy.
"And a cook house, too!"
"And a verandah!"
"And a shingled roof!"
"And all the people! Where in the world can they have come from?"
"There's the Inspector, anyway," said Cameron. "He is at the
bottom of this, I'll bet you."
"And Mr. Cochrane! And that young Englishman, Mr. Newsome!"
"And old Thatcher!"
"And Mrs. Cochrane, and Mr. Dent, and, oh, there's my friend Smith!
You remember he helped me put out the fire."
Soon they were at the gate of the corral where a group of men and
women stood awaiting them. Inspector Dickson was first:
"Hello, Cameron! Got back, eh? Welcome home, Mrs. Cameron," he
said as he helped her to alight.
Smith stood at the bronchos' heads.
"Now, Inspector," said Cameron, holding him by hand and collar,
"now what does this business mean?"
"Mean?" cried the Inspector with a laugh. "Means just what you
see. But won't you introduce us all?"
After all had been presented to his sister Cameron pursued his
question. "What does it mean, Inspector?"
"Mean? Ask Cochrane."
"Mr. Cochrane, tell me," cried Mandy, "who began this?"
"Ask Mr. Thatcher there," replied Mr. Cochrane.
"Who is responsible for this, Mr. Thatcher?" cried Mandy.
"Don't rightly know how the thing started. First thing I knowed
they was all at it."
"See here, Thatcher, you might as well own up. I am going to know
anyway. Where did the logs come from, for instance?" said Cameron in
a determined voice.
"Logs? Guess Bracken knows," replied Cochrane, turning to a tall,
lanky rancher who was standing at a little distance.
"Bracken," cried Cameron, striding to him with hand outstretched,
"what about the logs for the house? Where did they come from?"
"Well, I dunno. Smith was sayin' somethin' about a bee and gettin'
green logs."
"Smith?" cried Cameron, glancing at that individual now busy
unhitching the bronchos.
"And of course," continued Bracken, "green logs ain't any use for a
real good house, so--and then--well, I happened to have a bunch of
logs up the Big Horn. I guess the boys floated 'em down."
"Come away, Mrs. Cameron, and inspect your house," cried a stout,
red-faced matron. "I said they ought to await your coming to get
your plans, but Mr. Smith said he knew a little about building and
that they might as well go on with it. It was getting late in the
season, and so they went at it. Come away, we're having a great time
over it. Indeed, I think we've enjoyed it more than ever you will."
"But you haven't told us yet who started it," cried Mandy.
"Where did you get the lumber?" said Cameron.
"Well, the lumber," replied Cochrane, "came from the Fort, I guess.
Didn't it, Inspector?"
"Yes," replied the Inspector. "We had no immediate use for it, and
Smith told us just how much it would take."
"Smith?" said Cameron again. "Hello, Smith!" But Smith was
already leading the bronchos away to the stable.
"Yes," continued the Inspector, "and Smith was wondering how a
notice could be sent up to the Spruce Creek boys and to Loon Lake, so
I sent a man with the word and they brought down the lumber without
any trouble. But," continued the Inspector, "come along, Cameron, let
us follow the ladies."
"But this is growing more and more mysterious," protested Cameron.
"Can no one tell me how the thing originated? The sash and doors
now, where did they come from?"
"Oh, that's easy," said Cochrane. "I was at the Post Office, and,
hearin' Smith talkin' 'bout this raisin' bee and how they were stuck
for sash and door, so seein' I wasn't goin' to build this fall I told
him he might as well have the use of these. My team was laid up and
Smith got Jim Bracken to haul 'em down."
"Well, this gets me," said Cameron. "It appears no one started
this thing. Everything just happened. Now the shingles, I suppose
they just tumbled up into their place there."
"The shingles?" said Cochrane. "I dunno 'bout them. Didn't know
there were any in the country."
"Oh, they just got up into place there of themselves I have no
doubt," said Cameron.
"The shingles? Ah, bay Jove! Rawthah! Funny thing, don't-che-
naow," chimed in a young fellow attired in rather emphasized cow- boy
style, "funny thing! A Johnnie--quite a strangah to me, don't-
che-naow, was riding pawst my place lawst week and mentioned about
this--ah--raisin' bee he called it I think, and in fact abaout the
blawsted Indian, and the fire, don't-che-naow, and all the rest of
it, and how the chaps were all chipping in as he said, logs and
lumbah and so fowth. And then, bay Jove, he happened to mention that
they were rathah stumped for shingles, don't-che-naow, and, funny
thing, there chawnced to be behind my stable a few bunches, and I was
awfully glad to tu'n them ovah, and this--eh--pehson-- most
extraordinary chap I assuah you--got 'em down somehow."
"Who was it inquired?" asked Cameron.
"Don't naow him in the least. But it's the chap that seems to be
bossing the job."
"Oh, that's Smith," said Cochrane.
"Smith!" said Cameron, in great surprise. "I don't even know the
man. He was good enough to help my wife to beat back the fire. I
don't believe I even spoke to him. Who is he anyway?"
"Oh, he's Thatcher's man."
"Yes, but--"
"Come away, Mr. Cameron," cried Mrs. Cochrane from the door of the
new house. "Come away in and look at the result of our bee."
"This beats me," said Cameron, obeying the invitation, "but, say,
Dickson, it is mighty good of all these men. I have no claim--"
"Claim?" said Mr. Cochrane. "It might have been any of us. We
must stand together in this country, and especially these days, eh,
Inspector? Things are gettin' serious."
The Inspector nodded his head gravely.
"Yes," he said. "But, Mr. Cochrane," he added in a low voice, "it
is very necessary that as little as possible should be said about
these things just now. No occasion for any excitement or fuss. The
quieter things are kept the better."
"All right, Inspector, I understand, but--"
"What do you think of your new house, Mr. Cameron?" cried Mrs.
Cochrane. "Come in. Now what do you think of this for three days'
work?"
"Oh, Allan, I have been all through it and it's perfectly
wonderful," said his wife.
"Oh nothing very wonderful, Mrs. Cameron," said Cochrane, "but it
will do for a while."
"Perfectly wonderful in its whole plan, and beautifully complete,"
insisted Mandy. "See, a living-room, a lovely large one, two
bedrooms off it, and, look here, cupboards and closets, and a pantry,
and--" here she opened the door in the corner--"a perfectly lovely
up-stairs! Not to speak of the cook-house out at the back."
"Wonderful is the word," said Cameron, "for why in all the world
should these people--?"
"And look, Allan, at Moira! She's just lost in rapture over that
fireplace."
"And I don't wonder," said her husband. "It is really fine. Whose
idea was it?" he continued, moving toward Moira's side, who was
standing before a large fireplace of beautiful masonry set in between
the two doors that led to the bedrooms at the far end of the
living-room.
"It was Andy Hepburn from Loon Lake that built it," said Mr.
Cochrane.
"I wish I could thank him," said Moira fervently.
"Well, there he is outside the window, Miss Moira," said a young
fellow who was supposed to be busy putting up a molding round the
wainscoting, but who was in reality devoting himself to the young
lady at the present moment with open admiration. "Here, Andy," he
cried through the window, "you're wanted. Hurry up."
"Oh, don't, Mr. Dent. What will he think?"
A hairy little man, with a face dour and unmistakably Scotch, came
in.
"What's want-it, then?" he asked, with a deliberate sort of
gruffness.
"It's yourself, Andy, me boy," said young Dent, who, though
Canadian born, needed no announcement of his Irish ancestry. "It is
yourself, Andy, and this young lady, Miss Moira Cameron--Mr.
Hepburn--" Andy made reluctant acknowledgment of her smile and
bow--"wants to thank you for this fireplace."
"It is very beautiful indeed, Mr. Hepburn, and very thankful I am
to you for building it."
"Aw, it's no that bad," admitted Andy. "But ye need not thank me."
"But you built it?"
"Aye did I. But no o' ma ain wull. A fireplace is a feckless
thing in this country an' I think little o't."
"Whose idea was it then?"
"It was yon Smith buddie. He juist keepit dingin' awa' till A
promised if he got the lime--A kent o' nane in the country--A wud
build the thing."
"And he got the lime, eh, Andy?" said Dent.
"Aye, he got it," said Andy sourly. "Diel kens whaur."
"But I am sure you did it beautifully, Mr. Hepburn," said Moira,
moving closer to him, "and it will be making me think of home." Her
soft Highland accent and the quaint Highland phrasing seemed to reach
a soft spot in the little Scot.
"Hame? An' whaur's that?" he inquired, manifesting a grudging
interest.
"Where? Where but in the best of all lands, in Scotland," said
Moira. "Near Braemar."
"Braemar?"
"Aye, Braemar. I have only come four days ago."
"Aye, an' did ye say, lassie!" said Andy, with a faint accession of
interest. "It's a bonny country ye've left behind, and far enough
frae here."
"Far indeed," said Moira, letting her shining brown eyes rest upon
his face. "And it is myself that knows it. But when the fire burns
yonder," she added, pointing to the fireplace, "I will be seeing the
hills and the glens and the moors."
"'Deed, then, lassie," said Andy in a low hurried voice, moving
toward the door, "A'm gled that Smith buddie gar't me build it."
"Wait, Mr. Hepburn," said Moira, shyly holding out her hand, "don't
you think that Scotties in this far land should be friends?"
"An' prood I'd be, Miss Cameron," replied Andy, and, seizing her
hand, he gave it a violent shake, flung it from him and fled through
the door.
"He's a cure, now, isn't he!" said Dent.
"I think he is fine," said Moira with enthusiasm. "It takes a Scot
to understand a Scot, you see, and I am glad I know him. Do you
know, he is a little like the fireplace himself," she said, "rugged,
a wee bit rough, but fine."
"The real stuff, eh?" said Dent. "The pure quill."
"Yes, that is it. Solid and steadfast, with no pretense."
Meanwhile the work of inspecting the new house was going on.
Everywhere appeared fresh cause for delighted wonder, but still the
origin of the raising bee remained a mystery.
Balked by the men, Cameron turned in his search to the women and
proceeded to the tent where preparations were being made for the
supper.
"Tut tut, Mr. Cameron," said Mrs. Cochrane, her broad good-natured
face beaming with health and good humor, "what difference does it
make? Your neighbors are only too glad of a chance to show their
goodwill for yourself, and more for your wife."
"I am sure you are right there," said Cameron.
"And it is the way of the country. We must stick together, John
says. It's your turn to-day, it may be ours to-morrow and that's all
there is to it. So clear out of this tent and make yourself busy. By
the way, where's the pipes? The folk will soon be asking for a tune."
"But I want to know, Mrs. Cochrane," persisted Cameron.
"Where's the pipes, I'm saying. John," she cried, lifting her
voice, to her husband, who was standing at the other side of the
house. "Where's the pipes? They're not burned, I hope," she
continued, turning to Cameron. "The whole settlement would feel that
a loss."
"Fortunately no. Young Macgregor at the Fort has them."
"Then I wonder if they are here. John, find out from the Inspector
yonder where the pipes are. We will be wanting them this evening."
To her husband's inquiry the Inspector replied that if Macgregor
ever had the pipes it was a moral certainty that he had carried them
with him to the raising, "for it is my firm belief," he added, "that
he sleeps with them."
"Do go and see now, like a dear man," said Mrs. Cochrane to
Cameron.
From group to group of the workers Cameron went, exchanging
greetings, but persistently seeking to discover the originator of the
raising bee. But all in vain, and in despair he came back to his wife
with the question "Who is this Smith, anyway?"
"Mr. Smith," she said with deliberate emphasis, "is my friend, my
particular friend. I found him a friend when I needed one badly."
"Yes, but who is he?" inquired Moira, who, with Mr. Dent in
attendance, had sauntered up. "Who is he, Mr. Dent? Do you know?"
"No, not from Adam's mule. He's old Thatcher's man. That's all I
know about him."
"He is Mr. Thatcher's man? Oh!" said Moira, "Mr. Thatcher's
servant." A subtle note of disappointment sounded in her voice.
"Servant, Moira?" said Allan in a shocked tone. "Wipe out the
thought. There is no such thing as servant west of the Great Lakes
in this country. A man may help me with my work for a consideration,
but he is no servant of mine as you understand the term, for he
considers himself just as good as I am and he may be considerably
better."
"Oh, Allan," protested his sister with flushing face, "I know. I
know all that, but you know what I mean."
"Yes, I know perfectly," said her brother, "for I had the same
notion. For instance, for six months I was a 'servant' in Mandy's
home, eh, Mandy?"
"Nonsense!" cried Mandy indignantly. "You were our hired man and
just like the rest of us."
"Do you get that distinction, Moira? There is no such thing as
servant in this country," continued Cameron. "We are all the same
socially and stand to help each other. Rather a fine idea that."
"Yes, fine," cried Moira, "but--" and she paused, her face still
flushed.
"Who's Smith? is the great question," interjected Dent. "Well,
then, Miss Cameron, between you and me we don't ask that question in
this country. Smith is Smith and Jones is Jones and that's the first
and last of it. We all let it go at that."
But now the last row of shingles was in place, the last door hung,
the last door-knob set. The whole house stood complete, inside and
out, top and bottom, when a tattoo beat upon a dish pan gave the
summons to the supper table. The table was spread in all its
luxurious variety and abundance beneath the poplar trees. There the
people gathered all upon the basis of pure democratic equality,
"Duke's son and cook's son," each estimated at such worth as could be
demonstrated was in him. Fictitious standards of values were ignored.
Every man was given his fair opportunity to show his stuff and
according to his showing was his place in the community. A generous
good fellowship and friendly good-will toward the new- comer pervaded
the company, but with all this a kind of reserve marked the
intercourse of these men with each other. Men were taken on trial at
face value and no questions asked.
This evening, however, the dominant note was one of generous and
enthusiastic sympathy with the young rancher and his wife, who had
come so lately among them and who had been made the unfortunate
victim of a sinister and threatening foe, hitherto, it is true,
regarded with indifference or with friendly pity but lately assuming
an ominous importance. There was underneath the gay hilarity of the
gathering an undertone of apprehension until the Inspector made his
speech. It was short and went straight at the mark. There was
danger, he acknowledged. It would be idle to ignore that there were
ugly rumors flying. There was need for watchfulness, but there was no
need for alarm. The Police Force was charged with the responsibility
of protecting the lives and property of the people. They assumed to
the full this responsibility, though they were very short-handed at
present, but if they ever felt they needed assistance they knew they
could rely upon the steady courage of the men of the district such as
he saw before him.
There was need of no further words and the Inspector's speech
passed with no response. It was not after the manner of these men to
make demonstration either of their loyalty or of their courage.
Cameron's speech at the last came haltingly. On the one hand his
Highland pride made it difficult for him to accept gifts from any
source whatever. On the other hand his Highland courtesy forbade his
giving offense to those who were at once his hosts and his guests, but
none suspected the reason for the halting in his speech. As Western
men they rather approved than otherwise the hesitation and reserve
that marked his words.
Before they rose from the supper table, however, there were calls
for Mrs. Cameron, calls so insistent and clamorous that, overcoming
her embarrassment, she made reply. "We have not yet found out who
was responsible for the originating of this great kindness. But no
matter. We forgive him, for otherwise my husband and I would never
have come to know how rich we are in true friends and kind neighbors,
and now that you have built this house let me say that henceforth by
day or by night you are welcome to it, for it is yours."
After the storm of applause had died down, a voice was heard
gruffly and somewhat anxiously protesting, "But not all at one time."
"Who was that?" asked Mandy of young Dent as the supper party broke
up.
"That's Smith," said Dent, "and he's a queer one."
"Smith?" said Cameron. "The chap meets us everywhere. I must look
him up."
But there was a universal and insistent demand for "the pipes."
"You look him up, Mandy," cried her husband as he departed in
response to the call.
"I shall find him, and all about him," said Mandy with
determination.
The next two hours were spent in dancing to Cameron's reels, in
which all, with more or less grace, took part till the piper declared
he was clean done.
"Let Macgregor have the pipes, Cameron," cried the Inspector. "He
is longing for a chance, I am sure, and you give us the Highland
Fling."
"Come Moira," cried Cameron gaily, handing the pipes to Macgregor
and, taking his sister by the hand, he led her out into the
intricacies of the Highland Reel, while the sides of the living-
room, the doors and the windows, were thronged with admiring
onlookers. Even Andy Hepburn's rugged face lost something of its
dourness; and as the brother and sister together did that most famous
of all the ancient dances of Scotland, the Highland Fling, his face
relaxed into a broad smile.
"There's Smith," said young Dent to Mandy in a low voice as the
reel was drawing to a close.
"Where?" she cried. "I have been looking for him everywhere."
"There, at the window, outside."
Even in the dim light of the lanterns and candles hung here and
there upon the walls and stuck on the window sills, Smith's face,
pale, stern, sad, shone like a specter out of the darkness behind.
"What's the matter with the man?" cried Mandy. "I must find out."
Suddenly the reel came to an end and Cameron, taking the pipes from
young Macgregor, cried, "Now, Moira, we will give them our way of
it," and, tuning the pipes anew, he played over once and again their
own Glen March, known only to the piper of the Cuagh Oir. Then with
cunning skill making atmosphere, he dropped into a wild and weird
lament, Moira standing the while like one seeing a vision. With a
swift change the pipes shrilled into the true Highland version of the
ancient reel, enriched with grace notes and variations all his own.
For a few moments the girl stood as if unwilling to yield herself to
the invitation of the pipes. Suddenly, as if moved by another spirit
than her own, she stepped into the circle and whirled away into the
mazes of the ancient style of the Highland Fling, such as is mastered
by comparatively few even of the Highland folk. With wonderful grace
and supple strength she passed from figure to figure and from step to
step, responding to the wild mad music as to a master spirit.
In the midst of the dance Mandy made her way out of the house and
round to the window where Smith stood gazing in upon the dancer. She
quietly approached him from behind and for a few moments stood at his
side. He was breathing heavily like a man in pain.
"What is it, Mr. Smith?" she said, touching him gently on the
shoulder.
He sprang from her touch as from a stab and darted back from the
crowd about the window.
"What is it, Mr. Smith?" she said again, following him. "You are
not well. You are in pain."
He stood a moment or two gazing at her with staring eyes and parted
lips, pain, grief and even rage distorting his pale face.
"It is wicked," at length he panted. "It is just terrible wicked--
a young girl like that."
"Wicked? Who? What?"
"That--that girl--dancing like that."
"Dancing? That kind of dancing?" cried Mandy, astonished. "I was
brought up a Methodist myself," she continued, "but that kind of
dancing--why, I love it."
"It is of the devil. I am a Methodist--a preacher--but I could not
preach, so I quit. But that is of the world, the flesh, and the
devil and--and I have not the courage to denounce it. She is--God
help me--so--so wonderful--so wonderful."
"But, Mr. Smith," said Mandy, laying her hand upon his arm, and
seeking to sooth his passion, "surely this dancing is--"
Loud cheers and clapping of hands from the house interrupted her.
The man put his hands over his eyes as if to shut out a horrid
vision, shuddered violently, and with a weird sound broke from her
touch and fled into the bluff behind the house just as the party came
streaming from the house preparatory to departing. It seemed to Mandy
as if she had caught a glimpse of the inner chambers of a soul and had
seen things too sacred to be uttered.
Among the last to leave were young Dent and the Inspector.
"We have found out the culprit," cried Dent, as he was saying good-
night.
"The culprit?" said Mandy. "What do you mean?"
"The fellow who has engineered this whole business."
"Who is it?" said Cameron.
"Why, listen," said Dent. "Who got the logs from Bracken? Smith.
Who got the Inspector to send men through the settlement? Smith. Who
got the lumber out of the same Inspector? Smith. And the sash and
doors out of Cochrane? Smith. And wiggled the shingles out of
Newsome? And euchred old Scotty Hepburn into building the fireplace?
And planned and bossed the whole job? Who? Smith. This whole
business is Smith's work."
"And where is Smith? Have you seen him, Mandy? We have not
thanked him," said Cameron.
"He is gone, I think," said Mandy. "He left some time ago. We
shall thank him later. But I am sure we owe a great deal to you,
Inspector Dickson, to you, Mr. Dent, and indeed to all our friends,"
she added, as she bade them good-night.
For some moments they lingered in the moonlight.
"To think that this is Smith's work!" said Cameron, waving his hand
toward the house. "That queer chap! One thing I have learned, never
to judge a man by his legs again."
"He is a fine fellow," said Mandy indignantly, "and with a fine
soul in spite of--"
"His wobbly legs," said her husband smiling.
"It's a shame, Allan. What difference does it make what kind of
legs a man has?"
"Very true," replied her husband smiling, "and if you knew your
Bible better, Mandy, you would have found excellent authority for
your position in the words of the psalmist, 'The Lord taketh no
pleasure in the legs of a man.' But, say, it is a joke," he added,
"to think of this being Smith's work."
But they were not yet done with Smith, for as they turned to pass
into the house a series of shrill cries from the bluff behind pierced
the stillness of the night.
Shaking off the clutching hands of his wife and sister, Cameron
darted into the bluff and found two figures frantically struggling
upon the ground. The moonlight trickling through the branches
revealed the man on top to be an Indian with a knife in his hand, but
he was held in such close embrace that he could not strike.
"Hold up!" cried Cameron, seizing the Indian by the wrist. "Stop
that! Let him go!" he cried to the man below. "I've got him safe
enough. Let him go! Let him go, I tell you! Now, then, get up! Get
up, both of you!"
The under man released his grip, allowed the Indian to rise and got
himself to his feet.
"Come out into the light!" said Cameron sharply, leading the Indian
out of the bluff, followed by the other, still panting. Here they
were joined by the ladies. "Now, then, what the deuce is all this
row?" inquired Cameron.
"Why, it's Mr. Smith!" cried Mandy.
"Smith again! More of Smith's work, eh? Well, this beats me,"
said her husband. For some moments Cameron stood surveying the
group, the Indian silent and immobile as one of the poplar trees
beside him, the ladies with faces white, Smith disheveled in garb,
pale and panting and evidently under great excitement. Cameron burst
into a loud laugh. Smith's pale face flushed a swift red, visible
even in the moonlight, then grew pale again, his excited panting
ceased as he became quiet.
"Now what is the row?" asked Cameron again. "What is it, Smith?"
"I found this Indian in the bush here and I seized him. I
thought-- he might--do something."
"Do something?"
"Yes--some mischief--to some of you."
"What? You found this Indian in the bluff here and you just jumped
on him? You might better have jumped on a wild cat. Are you used to
this sort of thing? Do you know the ways of these people?"
"I never saw an Indian before."
"Good Heavens, man! He might have killed you. And he would have
in two minutes more."
"He might have killed--some of you," said Smith.
Cameron laughed again.
"Now what were you doing in the bluff?" he said sharply, turning to
the Indian.
"Chief Trotting Wolf," said the Indian in the low undertone common
to his people, "Chief Trotting Wolf want you' squaw--boy seeck bad--
leg beeg beeg. Boy go die. Come." He turned to Mandy and repeated
"Come--queeek--queeek."
"Why didn't you come earlier?" said Cameron sharply. "It is too
late now. We are going to sleep."
"Me come dis." He lowered his hand toward the ground. "Too much
mans--no like--Indian wait all go 'way--dis man much beeg fight--no
good. Come queeek--boy go die."
Already Mandy had made up her mind.
"Let us hurry, Allan," she said.
"You can't go to-night," he replied. "You are dead tired. Wait
till morning."
"No, no, we must go." She turned into the house, followed by her
husband, and began to rummage in her bag. "Lucky thing I got these
supplies in town," she said, hastily putting together her nurse's
equipment and some simple remedies. "I wonder if that boy has fever.
Bring that Indian in."
"Have you had the doctor?" she inquired, when he appeared.
"Huh! Doctor want cut off leg--dis," his action was sufficiently
suggestive. "Boy say no."
"Has the boy any fever? Does he talk-talk-talk?" The Indian
nodded his head vigorously.
"Talk much--all day--all night."
"He is evidently in a high fever," said Mandy to her husband. "We
must try to check that. Now, my dear, you hurry and get the horses."
"But what shall we do with Moira?" said Cameron suddenly.
"Why," cried Moira, "let me go with you. I should love to go."
But this did not meet with Cameron's approval.
"I can stay here," suggested Smith hesitatingly, "or Miss Cameron
can go over with me to the Thatchers'."
"That is better," said Cameron shortly. "We can drop her at the
Thatchers' as we pass."
In half an hour Cameron returned with the horses and the party
proceeded on their way.
At the Piegan Reserve they were met by Chief Trotting Wolf himself
and, without more than a single word of greeting, were led to the
tent in which the sick boy lay. Beside him sat the old squaw in a
corner of the tent, crooning a weird song as she swayed to and fro.
The sick boy lay on a couch of skins, his eyes shining with fever,
his foot festering and in a state of indescribable filth and his
whole condition one of unspeakable wretchedness. Cameron found his
gorge rise at the sight of the gangrenous ankle.
"This is a horrid business, Mandy," he exclaimed. "This is not for
you. Let us send for the doctor. That foot will surely have to come
off. Don't mess with it. Let us have the doctor."
But his wife, from the moment of her first sight of the wounded
foot, forgot all but her mission of help.
"We must have a clean tent, Allan," she said, "and plenty of hot
water. Get the hot water first."
Cameron turned to the Chief and said, "Hot water, quick!"
"Huh--good," replied the Chief, and in a few moments returned with
a small pail of luke-warm water.
"Oh," cried Mandy, "it must be hot and we must have lots of it."
"Hot," cried Cameron to the Chief. "Big pail--hot--hot."
"Huh," grunted the Chief a second time with growing intelligence,
and in an incredibly short space returned with water sufficiently hot
and in sufficient quantity.
All unconscious of the admiring eyes that followed the swift and
skilled movements of her capable hands, Mandy worked over the
festering and fevered wound till, cleansed, soothed, wrapped in a
cooling lotion, the limb rested easily upon a sling of birch bark and
skins suggested and prepared by the Chief. Then for the first time
the boy made a sound.
"Huh," he grunted feebly. "Doctor--no good. Squaw--heap good. Me
two foot--live--one foot--" he held up one finger--"die." His eyes
were shining with something other than the fever that drove the blood
racing through his veins. As a dog's eyes follow every movement of
his master so the lad's eyes, eloquent with adoring gratitude,
followed his nurse as she moved about the wigwam.
"Now we must get that clean tent, Allan."
"All right," said her husband. "It will be no easy job, but we
shall do our best. Here, Chief," he cried, "get some of your young
men to pitch another tent in a clean place."
The Chief, eager though he was to assist, hesitated.
"No young men," he said. "Get squaw," and departed abruptly.
"No young men, eh?" said Cameron to his wife. "Where are they,
then? I notice there are no bucks around."
And so while the squaws were pitching a tent in a spot somewhat
removed from the encampment, Cameron poked about among the tents and
wigwams of which the Indian encampment consisted, but found for the
most part only squaws and children and old men. He came back to his
wife greatly disturbed.
"The young bucks are gone, Mandy. I must get after this thing
quickly. I wish I had Jerry here. Let's see? You ask for a
messenger to be sent to the fort for the doctor and medicine. I
shall enclose a note to the Inspector. We want the doctor here as
soon as possible and we want Jerry here at the earliest possible
moment."
With a great show of urgency a messenger was requisitioned and
dispatched, carrying a note from Cameron to the Commissioner
requesting the presence of the doctor with his medicine bag, but also
requesting that Jerry, the redoubtable half-breed interpreter and
scout, with a couple of constables, should accompany the doctor, the
constables, however, to wait outside the camp until summoned.
During the hours that must elapse before any answer could be had
from the fort, Cameron prepared a couch in a corner of the sick boy's
tent for his wife, and, rolling himself in his blanket, he laid
himself down at the door outside where, wearied with the long day and
its many exciting events, he slept without turning, till shortly after
daybreak he was awakened by a chorus of yelping curs which heralded
the arrival of the doctor from the fort with the interpreter Jerry in
attendance.
After breakfast, prepared by Jerry with dispatch and skill, the
product of long experience, there was a thorough examination of the
sick boy's condition through the interpreter, upon the conclusion of
which a long consultation followed between the doctor, Cameron and
Mandy. It was finally decided that the doctor should remain with
Mandy in the Indian camp until a change should become apparent in the
condition of the boy, and that Cameron with the interpreter should
pick up the two constables and follow in the trail of the young Piegan
braves. In order to allay suspicion Cameron and his companion left
the camp by the trail which led toward the fort. For four miles or so
they rode smartly until the trail passed into a thick timber of spruce
mixed with poplar. Here Cameron paused, and, making a slight sign in
the direction from which they had come, he said:
"Drop back, Jerry, and see if any Indian is following."
"Good," grunted Jerry. "Go slow one mile," and, slipping from his
pony, he handed the reins to Cameron and faded like a shadow into the
brushwood.
For a mile Cameron rode, pausing now and then to listen for the
sound of anyone following, then drew rein and waited for his
companion. After a few minutes of eager listening he suddenly sat
back in his saddle and felt for his pipe.
"All right, Jerry," he said softly, "come out."
Grinning somewhat shamefacedly Jerry parted a bunch of spruce
boughs and stood at Cameron's side.
"Good ears," he said, glancing up into Cameron's face.
"No, Jerry," replied Cameron, "I saw the blue-jay."
"Two Indian run tree mile--find notting--go back."
"Good! Where are our men?"
"Down Coulee Swampy Creek."
"All right, Jerry. Any news at the fort last two or three days?"
"Beeg meetin' St. Laurent. Much half-breed. Some Indian too.
Louis Riel mak beeg spik--beeg noise--blood! blood! blood! Much beeg
fool." Jerry's tone indicated the completeness of his contempt for
the whole proceedings at St. Laurent.
"Something doing, eh, Jerry?"
"Bah!" grunted Jerry contemptuously.
"Well, there's something doing here," continued Cameron. "Trotting
Wolf's young men have left the reserve and Trotting Wolf is very
anxious that we should not know it. I want you to go back, find out
what direction they have taken, how far ahead they are, how many. We
camp to-night at the Big Rock at the entrance to the Sun Dance Canyon.
You remember?"
Jerry nodded.
"There's something doing, Jerry, or I am much mistaken. Got any
grub?"
"Grub?" asked Jerry. "Me--here--t'ree day," tapping his rolled
blanket at the back of his saddle. "Odder fellers--grub--Jakes--
t'ree men--t'ree day. Come Beeg Rock to-night--mebbe to-morrow." So
saying, Jerry climbed on to his pony and took the back trail, while
Cameron went forward to meet his men at the Swampy Creek Coulee.
Making a somewhat wide detour to avoid the approaches to the Indian
encampment, Cameron and his two men rode for the Big Rock at the
entrance to the Sun Dance Canyon. They gave themselves no concern
about Trotting Wolf's band of young men. They knew well that what
Jerry could not discover would not be worth finding out. A year's
close association with Jerry had taught Cameron something of the
marvelous powers of observation, of the tenacity and courage
possessed by the little half-breed that made him the keenest scout in
the North West Mounted Police.
At the Big Rock they arrived late in the afternoon and there waited
for Jerry's appearing; but night had fallen and had broken into
morning before the scout came into camp with a single word of report:
"Notting."
"No Piegans?" exclaimed Cameron.
"No--not dis side Blood Reserve."
"Eat something, Jerry, then we will talk," said Cameron.
Jerry had already broken his fast, but was ready for more. After
the meal was finished he made his report. His report was clear and
concise. On leaving Cameron in the morning he had taken the most
likely direction to discover traces of the Piegan band, namely that
suggested by Cameron, and, fetching a wide circle, had ridden toward
the mountains, but he had come upon no sign. Then he had penetrated
into the canyon and ridden down toward the entrance, but still had
found no trace. He had then ridden backward toward the Piegan Reserve
and, picking up a trail of one or two ponies, had followed it till he
found it broaden into that of a considerable band making eastward.
Then he knew he had found the trail he wanted.
"How many, Jerry?" asked Cameron.
The half-breed held up both hands three times.
"Mebbe more."
"Thirty or forty?" exclaimed Cameron. "Any Squaws?
"No."
"Hunting-expedition?"
"No."
"Where were they going?"
"Blood Reserve t'ink--dunno."
Cameron sat smoking in silence. He was completely at a loss.
"Why go to the Bloods?" he asked of Jerry.
"Dunno."
Jerry was not strong in his constructive faculty. His powers were
those of observation.
"There is no sense in them going to the Blood Reserve, Jerry," said
Cameron impatiently. "The Bloods are a pack of thieves, we know, but
our people are keeping a close watch on them."
Jerry grunted acquiescence.
"There is no big Indian camping ground on the Blood Reserve. You
wouldn't get the Blackfeet to go to any pow-wow there."
Again Jerry grunted.
"How far did you follow their trail, Jerry?"
"Two--t'ree mile."
Cameron sat long and smoked. The thing was extremely puzzling. It
seemed unlikely that if the Piegan band were going to a rendezvous of
Indians they should select a district so closely under the inspection
of the Police. Furthermore there was no great prestige attaching to
the Bloods to make their reserve a place of meeting.
"Jerry," said Cameron at length, "I believe they are up this Sun
Dance Canyon somewhere."
"No," said Jerry decisively. "No sign--come down mesef." His tone
was that of finality.
"I believe, Jerry, they doubled back and came in from the north end
after you had left. I feel sure they are up there now and we will go
and find them."
Jerry sat silent, smoking thoughtfully. Finally he took his pipe
from his mouth, pressed the tobacco hard down with his horny middle
finger and stuck it in his pocket.
"Mebbe so," he said slowly, a slight grin distorting his wizened
little face, "mebbe so, but t'ink not--me."
"Well, Jerry, where could they have gone? They might ride straight
to Crowfoot's Reserve, but I think that is extremely unlikely. They
certainly would not go to the Bloods, therefore they must be up this
canyon. We will go up, Jerry, for ten miles or so and see what we can
see."
"Good," said Jerry with a grunt, his tone conveying his conviction
that where the chief scout of the North West Mounted Police had said
it was useless to search, any other man searching would have nothing
but his folly for his pains.
"Have a sleep first, Jerry. We need not start for a couple of
hours."
Jerry grunted his usual reply, rolled himself in his blanket and,
lying down at the back of a rock, was asleep in a minute's time.
In two hours to the minute he stood beside his pony waiting for
Cameron, who had been explaining his plan to the two constables and
giving them his final orders.
The orders were very brief and simple. They were to wait where
they were till noon. If any of the band of Piegans appeared one of
the men was to ride up the canyon with the information, the other was
to follow the band till they camped and then ride back till he should
meet his comrades. They divided up the grub into two parts and
Cameron and the interpreter took their way up the canyon.
The canyon consisted of a deep cleft across a series of ranges of
hills or low mountains. Through it ran a rough breakneck trail once
used by the Indians and trappers but now abandoned since the building
of the Canadian Pacific Railway through the Kicking Horse Pass and the
opening of the Government trail through the Crow's Nest. From this
which had once been the main trail other trails led westward into the
Kootenays and eastward into the Foothill country. At times the canyon
widened into a valley, rich in grazing and in streams of water, again
it narrowed into a gorge, deep and black, with rugged sides above
which only the blue sky was visible, and from which led cavernous
passages that wound into the heart of the mountains, some of them
large enough to hold a hundred men or more without crowding. These
caverns had been and still were found to be most convenient and useful
for the purpose of whisky-runners and of cattle-rustlers, affording
safe hiding-places for themselves and their spoil. With this trail
and all its ramifications Jerry was thoroughly familiar. The only
other man in the Force who knew it better than Jerry was Cameron
himself. For many months he had patroled the main trail and all its
cross leaders, lived in its caves and explored its caverns in pursuit
of those interesting gentlemen whose activities more than anything
else had rendered necessary the existence of the North West Mounted
Police. In ancient times the caves along the Sun Dance Trail had
been used by the Indian Medicine-Men for their pagan rites, and hence
in the eyes of the Indians to these caves attached a dreadful
reverence that made them places to be avoided in recent years by the
various tribes now gathered on the reserves. But during these last
months of unrest it was suspected by the Police that the ancient uses
of these caves had been revived and that the rites long since fallen
into desuetude were once more being practised.
For the first few miles of the canyon the trail offered good
footing and easy going, but as the gorge deepened and narrowed the
difficulties increased until riding became impossible, and only by
the most strenuous efforts on the part of both men and beasts could
any advance be made. And so through the day and into the late
evening they toiled on, ever alert for sight or sound of the Piegan
band. At length Cameron broke the silence.
"We must camp, Jerry," he said. "We are making no time and we may
spoil things. I know a good camp-ground near by."
"Me too," grunted Jerry, who was as tired as his wiry frame ever
allowed him to become.
They took a trail leading eastward, which to all eyes but those
familiar with it would have been invisible, for a hundred yards or so
and came to the bed of a dry stream which issued from between two
great rocks. Behind one of these rocks there opened out a grassy plot
a few yards square, and beyond the grass a little lifted platform of
rock against a sheer cliff. Here they camped, picketing their horses
on the grass and cooking their supper upon the platform of rock over a
tiny fire of dry twigs, for the wind was blowing down the canyon and
they knew that they could cook their meal and have their smoke without
fear of detection. For some time after supper they sat smoking in
that absolute silence which is the characteristic of the true man of
the woods. The gentle breeze blowing down the canyon brought to their
ears the rustling of the dry poplar-leaves and the faint murmur of the
stream which, tumbling down the canyon, accompanied the main trail a
hundred yards away.
Suddenly Cameron's hand fell upon the knee of the half-breed with a
swift grip.
"Listen!" he said, bending forward.
With mouths slightly open and with hands to their ears they both
sat motionless, breathless, every nerve on strain. Gradually the
dead silence seemed to resolve itself into rhythmic waves of motion
rather than of sound--"TUM-ta-ta-TUM. TUM-ta-ta-TUM. TUM-ta-ta-
TUM." It was the throb of the Indian medicine-drum, which once heard
can never be forgotten or mistaken. Without a word to each other they
rose, doused their fire, cached their saddles, blankets and grub, and,
taking only their revolvers, set off up the canyon. Before they had
gone many yards Cameron halted.
"What do you think, Jerry?" he said. "I take it they have come in
the back way over the old Porcupine Trail."
Jerry grunted approval of the suggestion.
"Then we can go in from the canyon. It is hard going, but there is
less fear of detection. They are sure to be in the Big Wigwam."
Jerry shook his head, with a puzzled look on his face.
"Dunno me."
"That is where they are," said Cameron. "Come on! Only two miles
from here."
Steadily the throb of the medicine-drum grew more distinct as they
moved slowly up the canyon, rising and falling upon the breeze that
came down through the darkness to meet them. The trail, which was
bad enough in the light, became exceedingly dangerous and difficult
in the blackness of the night. On they struggled painfully, now
clinging to the sides of the gorge, now mounting up over a hill and
again descending to the level of the foaming stream.
"Will they have sentries out, I wonder?" whispered Cameron in
Jerry's ear.
"No--beeg medicine going on--no sentry."
"All right, then, we will walk straight in on them."
"What you do?" inquired Jerry.
"We will see what they are doing and send them about their
business," said Cameron shortly.
"No," said Jerry firmly. "S'pose Indian mak beeg medicine--bes'
leave him go till morning."
"Well, Jerry, we will take a look at them at any rate," said
Cameron. "But if they are fooling around with any rebellion nonsense
I am going to step in and stop it."
"No," said Jerry again very gravely. "Beeg medicine mak' Indian
man crazy--fool--dance--sing--mak' brave--then keel--queeck!"
"Come along, then, Jerry," said Cameron impatiently. And on they
went. The throb of the drum grew clearer until it seemed that the
next turn in the trail should reveal the camp, while with the drum
throb they began to catch, at first faintly and then more clearly,
the monotonous chant "Hai-yai-kai-yai, Hai-yai-kai-yai," that ever
accompanies the Indian dance. Suddenly the drums ceased altogether
and with it the chanting, and then there arose upon the night silence
a low moaning cry that gradually rose into a long-drawn penetrating
wail, almost a scream, made by a single voice.
Jerry's hand caught Cameron's arm with a convulsive grip.
"What the deuce is that?" asked Cameron.
"Sioux Indian--he mak' dat when he go keel."
Once more the long weird wailing scream pierced the night and,
echoing down the canyon, was repeated a hundred times by the black
rocky sides. Cameron could feel Jerry's hand still quivering on his
arm.
"What's up with you, Jerry?" said Cameron impatiently.
"Me hear dat when A'm small boy--me."
Then Cameron remembered that it was Sioux blood that colored the
life-stream in Jerry's veins.
"Oh, pshaw!" said Cameron with gruff impatience. "Come on!" But
he was more shaken than he cared to acknowledge by that weird
unearthly cry and by its all too obvious effect upon the iron nerves
of that little half-breed at his side.
"Dey mak' dat cry when dey go meet Custer long 'go," said Jerry,
making no motion to go forward.
"What are you waiting for?" said Cameron harshly. "Come along,
unless you want to go back."
His words stung the half-breed into action. Cameron could feel him
in the dark jerk his hand away and hear him grit his teeth.
"Bah! You go hell!" he muttered between his clenched teeth.
"That is better," said Cameron cheerfully. "Now we will look in
upon these fire-eaters."
Sharp to the right they turned behind a cliff, and then back almost
upon their trail, still to the right, through a screen of spruce and
poplar, and found themselves in a hole of a rock that lengthened into
a tunnel blacker than the night outside. Pursuing this tunnel some
little distance they became aware of a light that grew as they moved
toward it into a fire set in the middle of a wide cavern. The cavern
was of irregular shape, with high-vaulted roof, open to the sky at the
apex and hung with glistening stalactites. The floor of this cavern
lay slightly below them, and from their position they could command a
full view of its interior.
The sides of the cavern round about were crowded with tawny faces
of Indians arranged rank upon rank, the first row seated upon the
ground, those behind crouching upon their haunches, those still
farther back standing. In the center of the cavern and with his face
lit by the fire stood the Sioux Chief, Onawata.
"Copperhead! By all that's holy!" cried Cameron.
"Onawata!" exclaimed the half-breed. "What he mak' here?"
"What is he saying, Jerry? Tell me everything--quick!" commanded
Cameron sharply.
Jerry was listening with eager face.
"He mak' beeg spik," he said.
"Go on!"
"He say Indian long tam' 'go have all country when his fadder small
boy. Dem day good hunting--plenty beaver, mink, moose, buffalo like
leaf on tree, plenty hit (eat), warm wigwam, Indian no seeck, notting
wrong. Dem day Indian lak' deer go every place. Dem day Indian man
lak' bear 'fraid notting. Good tam', happy, hunt deer, keel buffalo,
hit all day. Ah-h-h! ah-h-h!" The half-breed's voice faded in two
long gasps.
The Sioux's chanting voice rose and fell through the vaulted cavern
like a mighty instrument of music. His audience of crowding Indians
gazed in solemn rapt awe upon him. A spell held them fixed. The
whole circle swayed in unison with his swaying form as he chanted the
departed glories of those happy days when the red man roamed free
those plains and woods, lord of his destiny and subject only to his
own will. The mystic magic power of that rich resonant voice, its
rhythmic cadence emphasized by the soft throbbing of the drum, the
uplifted face glowing as with prophetic fire, the tall swaying form
instinct with exalted emotion, swept the souls of his hearers with
surging tides of passion. Cameron, though he caught but little of its
meaning, felt himself irresistibly borne along upon the torrent of the
flowing words. He glanced at Jerry beside him and was startled by the
intense emotion showing upon his little wizened face.
Suddenly there was a swift change of motif, and with it a change of
tone and movement and color. The marching, vibrant, triumphant chant
of freedom and of conquest subsided again into the long-drawn wail of
defeat, gloom and despair. Cameron needed no interpreter. He knew the
singer was telling the pathetic story of the passing of the day of the
Indian's glory and the advent of the day of his humiliation. With
sharp rising inflections, with staccato phrasing and with fierce
passionate intonation, the Sioux wrung the hearts of his hearers.
Again Cameron glanced at the half-breed at his side and again he was
startled to note the transformation in his face. Where there had been
glowing pride there was now bitter savage hate. For that hour at
least the half-breed was all Sioux. His father's blood was the water
in his veins, the red was only his Indian mother's. With face drawn
tense and lips bared into a snarl, with eyes gleaming, he gazed
fascinated upon the face of the singer. In imagination, in instinct,
in the deepest emotions of his soul Jerry was harking back again to
the savage in him, and the savage in him thirsting for revenge upon
the white man who had wrought this ruin upon him and his Indian race.
With a fine dramatic instinct the Sioux reached his climax and
abruptly ceased. A low moaning murmur ran round the circle and swelled
into a sobbing cry, then ceased as suddenly as there stepped into the
circle a stranger, evidently a half-breed, who began to speak. He
was a French Cree, he announced, and delivered his message in the
speech, half Cree, half French, affected by his race.
He had come fresh from the North country, from the disturbed
district, and bore, as it appeared, news of the very first importance
from those who were the leaders of his people in the unrest. At his
very first word Jerry drew a long deep breath and by his face appeared
to drop from heaven to earth. As the half- breed proceeded with his
tale his speech increased in rapidity.
"What is he saying, Jerry?" said Cameron after they had listened
for some minutes.
"Oh he beeg damfool!" said Jerry, whose vocabulary had been learned
mostly by association with freighters and the Police. "He tell 'bout
beeg meeting, beeg man Louis Riel mak' beeg noise. Bah! Beeg
damfool!" The whole scene had lost for Jerry its mystic
impressiveness and had become contemptibly commonplace. But not so
to Cameron. This was the part that held meaning for him. So he
pulled up the half-breed with a quick, sharp command.
"Listen close," he said, "and let me know what he says."
And as Jerry interpreted in his broken English the half-breed's
speech it appeared that there was something worth learning. At this
big meeting held in Batoche it seemed a petition of rights, to the
Dominion Parliament no less, had been drawn up, and besides this many
plans had been formed and many promises made of reward for all those
who dared to stand for their rights under the leadership of the great
Riel, while for the Indians very special arrangements had been made
and the most alluring prospects held out. For they were assured that,
when in the far North country the new Government was set up, the old
free independent life of which they had been hearing was to be
restored, all hampering restrictions imposed by the white man were to
be removed, and the good old days were to be brought back. The effect
upon the Indians was plainly evident. With solemn faces they
listened, nodding now and then grave approval, and Cameron felt that
the whole situation held possibilities of horror unspeakable in the
revival of that ancient savage spirit which had been so very
materially softened and tamed by years of kindly, patient and firm
control on the part of those who represented among them British law
and civilization. His original intention had been to stride in among
these Indians, to put a stop to their savage nonsense and order them
back to their reserves with never a thought of anything but obedience
on their part. But as he glanced about upon the circle of faces he
hesitated. This was no petty outbreak of ill temper on the part of a
number of Indians dissatisfied with their rations or chafing under
some new Police regulation. As his eye traveled round the circle he
noted that for the most part they were young men. A few of the
councilors of the various tribes represented were present. Many of
them he knew, but many others he could not distinguish in the dim
light of the fire.
"Who are those Indians, Jerry?" he asked.
And as Jerry ran over the names he began to realize how widely
representative of the various tribes in the western country the
gathering was. Practically every reserve in the West was
represented: Bloods, Piegans and Blackfeet from the foothill country,
Plain Crees and Wood Crees from the North. Even a few of the Stonies,
who were supposed to have done with all pagan rites and to have become
largely civilized, were present. Nor were these rank and file men
only. They were the picked braves of the tribes, and with them a
large number of the younger chiefs.
At length the half-breed Cree finished his tale, and in a few brief
fierce sentences he called the Indians of the West to join their
half-breed and Indian brothers of the North in one great effort to
regain their lost rights and to establish themselves for all time in
independence and freedom.
Then followed grave discussion carried on with deliberation and
courtesy by those sitting about the fire, and though gravity and
courtesy marked every utterance there thrilled through every speech
an ever deepening intensity of feeling. The fiery spirit of the red
man, long subdued by those powers that represented the civilization of
the white man, was burning fiercely within them. The insatiable lust
for glory formerly won in war or in the chase, but now no longer
possible to them, burned in their hearts like a consuming fire. The
life of monotonous struggle for a mere existence to which they were
condemned had from the first been intolerable to them. The prowess of
their fathers, whether in the slaughter of foes or in the excitement
of the chase, was the theme of song and story round every Indian
camp-fire and at every sun dance. For the young braves, life, once
vivid with color and thrilling with tingling emotions, had faded into
the somber-hued monotony of a dull and spiritless existence, eked out
by the charity of the race who had robbed them of their
hunting-grounds and deprived them of their rights as free men. The
lust for revenge, the fury of hate, the yearning for the return of the
days of the red man's independence raged through their speeches like
fire in an open forest; and, ever fanning yet ever controlling the
flame, old Copperhead presided till the moment should be ripe for
such action as he desired. Back and forward the question was
deliberated. Should they there and then pledge themselves to their
Northern brothers and commit themselves to this great approaching
adventure?
Quietly and with an air of judicial deliberation the Sioux put the
question to them. There was something to be lost and something to be
gained. But the loss, how insignificant it seemed! And the gain, how
immeasurable! And after all success was almost certain. What could
prevent it? A few scattered settlers with no arms nor ammunition,
with no means of communication, what could they effect? A Government
nearly three thousand miles away, with the nearest base of military
operations a thousand miles distant, what could they do? The only
real difficulty was the North West Mounted Police. But even as the
Sioux uttered the words a chill silence fell upon the excited throng.
The North West Mounted Police, who for a dozen years had guarded them
and cared for them and ruled them without favor and without fear!
Five hundred red coats of the Great White Mother across the sea, men
who had never been known to turn their backs upon a foe, who laughed
at noisy threats and whose simple word their greatest chief was
accustomed unhesitatingly to obey! Small wonder that the mere mention
of the name of those gallant "Riders of the Plains" should fall like a
chill upon their fevered imaginations. The Sioux was conscious of
that chill and set himself to counteract it.
"The Police!" he cried with unspeakable scorn, "the Police! They
will flee before the Indian braves like leaves before the autumn
wind."
"What says he?" cried Cameron eagerly. And Jerry swiftly
interpreted.
Without a moment's hesitation Cameron sprang to his feet and,
standing in the dim light at the entrance to the cave, with arm
outstretched and finger pointed at the speaker, he cried:
"Listen!" With a sudden start every face was turned in his
direction. "Listen!" he repeated. "The Sioux dog lies. He speaks
with double tongue. Never have the Indians seen a Policeman's back
turned in flight."
His unexpected appearance, his voice ringing like the blare of a
trumpet through the cavern, his tall figure with the outstretched
accusing arm and finger, the sharp challenge of the Sioux's lie with
what they all knew to be the truth, produced an effect utterly
indescribable. For some brief seconds they gazed upon him stricken
into silence as with a physical blow, then with a fierce exclamation
the Sioux snatched a rifle from the cave side and quicker than words
can tell fired straight at the upright accusing figure. But quicker
yet was Jerry's panther-spring. With a backhand he knocked Cameron
flat, out of range. Cameron dropped to the floor as if dead.
"What the deuce do you mean, Jerry?" he cried. "You nearly knocked
the wind out of me!"
"Beeg fool you!" grunted Jerry fiercely, dragging him back into the
tunnel out of the light.
"Let me go, Jerry!" cried Cameron in a rage, struggling to free
himself from the grip of the wiry half-breed.
"Mak' still!" hissed Jerry, laying his hand over Cameron's mouth.
"Indian mad--crazy--tak' scalp sure queeck."
"Let me go, Jerry, you little fool!" said Cameron. "I'll kill you
if you don't! I want that Sioux, and, by the eternal God, I am going
to have him!" He shook himself free of the half-breed's grasp and
sprang to his feet. "I am going to get him!" he repeated.
"No!" cried Jerry again, flinging himself upon him and winding his
arms about him. "Wait! Nodder tam'. Indian mad crazy--keel
quick--no talk--now."
Up and down the tunnel Cameron dragged him about as a mastiff might
a terrier, striving to free himself from those gripping arms. Even
as Jerry spoke, through the dim light the figure of an Indian could
be seen passing and repassing the entrance to the cave.
"We get him soon," said Jerry in an imploring whisper. "Come back
now--queeck--beeg hole close by."
With a great effort Cameron regained his self-control.
"By Jove, you are right, Jerry," he said quietly. "We certainly
can't take him now. But we must not lose him. Now listen to me
quick. This passage opens on to the canyon about fifty yards farther
down. Follow, and keep your eye on the Sioux. I shall watch here.
Go!"
Without an instant's hesitation Jerry obeyed, well aware that his
master had come to himself and again was in command.
Cameron meantime groped to the mouth of the tunnel by which he had
entered and peered out into the dim light. Close to his hand stood
an Indian in the cavern. Beyond him there was a confused mingling of
forms as if in bewilderment. The Council was evidently broken up for
the time. The Indians were greatly shaken by the vision that had
broken in upon them. That it was no form of flesh and blood was very
obvious to them, for the Sioux's bullet had passed through it and
spattered against the wall leaving no trail of blood behind it. There
was no holding them together, and almost before he was aware of it
Cameron saw the cavern empty of every living soul. Quickly but warily
he followed, searching each nook as he went, but the dim light of the
dying fire showed him nothing but the black walls and gloomy recesses
of the great cave. At the farther entrance he found Jerry awaiting
him.
"Where are they gone?" he asked.
"Beeg camp close by," replied Jerry. "Beeg camp--much Indian.
Some talk-talk, then go sleep. Chief Onawata he mak' more talk--
talk all night--then go sleep. We get him morning."
Cameron thought swiftly.
"I think you are right, Jerry. Now you get back quick for the men
and come to me here in the morning. We must not spoil the chance of
capturing this old devil. He will have these Indians worked up into
rebellion before we know where we are."
So saying, Cameron set forward that he might with his own eyes look
upon the camp and might the better plan his further course. Upon two
things he was firmly resolved. First, that he should break up this
council which held such possibilities of danger to the peace of the
country. And secondly, and chiefly, he must lay hold of this Sioux
plotter, not only because of the possibilities of mischief that lay in
him, but because of the injury he had done him and his.
Forward, then, he went and soon came upon the camp, and after
observing the lay of it, noting especially the tent in which the
Sioux Chief had disposed himself, he groped back to his cave, in a
nook of which--for he was nearly done out with weariness, and because
much yet lay before him--he laid himself down and slept soundly till
the morning.
Long before the return of the half-breed and his men Cameron was
astir and to some purpose. A scouting expedition around the Indian
camp rewarded him with a significant and useful discovery. In a
bluff some distance away he found the skins and heads of four steers,
and by examination of the brands upon the skins discovered two of them
to be from his own herd.
"All right, my braves," he muttered. "There will be a reckoning
for this some day not so far away. Meantime this will help this
day's work."
A night's sleep and an hour's quiet consideration had shown him the
folly of a straight frontal attack upon the Indians gathered for
conspiracy. They were too deeply stirred for anything like the usual
brusque manner of the Police to be effective. A slight indiscretion,
indeed, might kindle such a conflagration as would sweep the whole
country with the devastating horror of an Indian war. He recalled the
very grave manner of Inspector Dickson and resolved upon an entirely
new plan of action. At all costs he must allay suspicion that the
Police were at all anxious about the situation in the North. Further,
he must break the influence of the Sioux Chief over these Indians.
Lastly, he was determined that this arch-plotter should not escape
him again.
The sun was just visible over the lowest of the broken foothills
when Jerry and the two constables made their appearance, bringing,
with them Cameron's horse. After explaining to them fully his plan
and emphasizing the gravity of the situation and the importance of a
quiet, cool and resolute demeanor, they set off toward the Indian
encampment.
"I have no intention of stirring these chaps up," laid Cameron,
"but I am determined to arrest old Copperhead, and at the right
moment we must act boldly and promptly. He is too dangerous and much
too clever to be allowed his freedom among these Indians of ours at
this particular time. Now, then, Jerry and I will ride in looking for
cattle and prepared to charge these Indians with cattle-stealing.
This will put them on the defensive. Then the arrest will follow.
You two will remain within sound of whistle, but failing specific
direction let each man act on his own initiative."
Jerry listened with delight. His Chief was himself again. Before
the day was over he was to see him in an entirely new role. Nothing
in life afforded Jerry such keen delight as a bit of cool daring
successfully carried through. Hence with joyous heart he followed
Cameron into the Indian camp.
The morning hour is the hour of coolest reason. The fires of
emotion and imagination have not yet begun to burn. The reactions
from anything like rash action previously committed under the
stimulus of a heated imagination are caution and timidity, and upon
these reactions Cameron counted when he rode boldly into the Indian
camp.
With one swift glance his eye swept the camp and lighted upon the
Sioux Chief in the center of a group of younger men, his tall
commanding figure and haughty carriage giving him an outstanding
distinction over those about him. At his side stood a young Piegan
Chief, Eagle Feather by name, whom Cameron knew of old as a restless,
talkative Indian, an ambitious aspirant for leadership without the
qualities necessary to such a position. Straight to this group
Cameron rode.
"Good morning!" he said, saluting the group. "Ah, good morning,
Eagle Feather!"
Eagle Feather grunted an indistinct reply.
"Big Hunt, eh? Are you in command of this party, Eagle Feather?
No? Who then is?"
The Piegan turned and pointed to a short thick set man standing by
another fire, whose large well shaped head and penetrating eye
indicated both force and discretion.
"Ah, Running Stream," cried Cameron. "Come over here, Running
Stream. I am glad to see you, for I wish to talk to a man of
wisdom."
Slowly and with dignified, almost unwilling step Running Stream
approached. As he began to move, but not before, Cameron went to
meet him.
"I wish to talk with you," said Cameron in a quiet firm tone.
"Huh," grunted Running Stream.
"I have a matter of importance to speak to you about," continued
Cameron.
Running Stream's keen glance searched his face somewhat anxiously.
"I find, Running Stream, that your young men are breaking faith
with their friends, the Police."
Again the Chief searched Cameron's face with that keen swift
glance, but he said not a word, only waited.
"They are breaking the law as well, and I want to tell you they
will be punished. Where did they get the meat for these kettles?"
A look of relief gleamed for one brief instant across the Indian's
face, not unnoticed, however, by Cameron.
"Why do your young men steal my cattle?"
The Indian evinced indifference.
"Dunno--deer--mebbe--sheep."
"My brother speaks like a child," said Cameron quietly. "Do deer
and sheep have steers' heads and hides with brands on? Four heads I
find in the bluff. The Commissioner will ask you to explain these
hides and heads, and let me tell you, Running Stream, that the thieves
will spend some months in jail. They will then have plenty of time to
think of their folly and their wickedness."
An ugly glance shot from the Chief's eyes.
"Dunno," he grunted again, then began speaking volubly in the
Indian tongue.
"Speak English, Running Stream!" commanded Cameron. "I know you
can speak English well enough."
But Running Stream shook his head and continued his speech in
Indian, pointing to a bluff near by.
Cameron looked toward Jerry, who interpreted:
"He say young men tak' deer and sheep and bear. He show you skins
in bluff."
"Come," said Running Stream, supplementing Jerry's interpretation
and making toward the bluff. Cameron followed him and came upon the
skins of three jumping deer, of two mountain sheep and of two bear.
They turned back again to the fire.
"My young men no take cattle," said the Chief with haughty pride.
"Maybe so," said Cameron, "but some of your party have, Running
Stream, and the Commissioner will look to you. You are in command
here. He will give you a chance to clear yourself."
The Indian shrugged his shoulders and stood silent.
"My brother is not doing well," continued Cameron. "The Government
feed you if you are hungry. The Government protect you if you are
wronged."
It was an unfortunate word of Cameron's. A sudden cloud of anger
darkened the Indian's face.
"No!" he cried aloud. "My children--my squaw and my people go
hungry--go cold in winter--no skin--no meat."
"My brother knows--" replied Cameron with patient firmness--"You
translate this, Jerry"--and Jerry proceeded to translate with
eloquence and force--"the Government never refuse you meat. Last
winter your people would have starved but for the Government."
"No," cried the Indian again in harsh quick reply, the rage in his
face growing deeper, "my children cry--Indian cannot sleep--my white
brother's ears are closed. He hear only the wind--the storm-- he
sound sleep. For me no sleep--my children cry too loud."
"My brother knows," replied Cameron, "that the Government is far
away, that it takes a long time for answer to come back to the Indian
cry. But the answer came and the Indian received flour and bacon and
tea and sugar, and this winter will receive them again. But how can my
brother expect the Government to care for his people if the Indians
break the law? That is not good. These Indians are bad Indians and
the Police will punish the thieves. A thief is a bad man and ought to
be punished."
Suddenly a new voice broke in abruptly upon the discourse.
"Who steal the Indian's hunting-ground? Who drive away the
buffalo?" The voice rang with sharp defiance. It was the voice of
Onawata, the Sioux Chief.
Cameron paid no heed to the ringing voice. He kept his back turned
upon the Sioux.
"My brother knows," he continued, addressing himself to Running
Stream, "that the Indian's best friend is the Government, and the
Police are the Government's ears and eyes and hands and are ready
always to help the Indians, to protect them from fraud, to keep away
the whisky-peddlers, to be to them as friends and brothers. But my
brother has been listening to a snake that comes from another country
and that speaks with a forked tongue. Our Government bought the land
by treaty. Running Stream knows this to be no lie, but the truth.
Nor did the Government drive away the buffalo from the Indians. The
buffalo were driven away by the Sioux from the country of the snake
with the forked tongue. My brother remembers that only a few years
ago when the people to which this lying snake belongs came over to
this country and tried to drive away from their hunting-grounds the
Indians of this country, the Police protected the Indians and drove
back the hungry thieving Sioux to their own land. And now a little
bird has been telling me that this lying snake has been speaking into
the ears of our Indian brothers and trying to persuade them to dig up
the hatchet against their white brothers, their friends. The Police
know all about this and laugh at it. The Police know about the
foolish man at Batoche, the traitor Louis Riel. They know he is a
liar and a coward. He leads brave men astray and then runs away and
leaves them to suffer. This thing he did many years ago." And
Cameron proceeded to give a brief sketch of the fantastic and futile
rebellion of 1870 and of the ignoble part played by the vain and
empty-headed Riel.
The effect of Cameron's words upon the Indians was an amazement
even to himself. They forgot their breakfast and gathered close to
the speaker, their eager faces and gleaming eyes showing how deeply
stirred were their hearts.
Cameron was putting into his story an intensity of emotion and
passion that not only surprised himself, but amazed his interpreter.
Indeed so amazed was the little half-breed at Cameron's quite unusual
display of oratorical power that his own imagination took fire and his
own tongue was loosened to such an extent that by voice, look, tone
and gesture he poured into his officer's harangue a force and fervor
all his own.
"And now," continued Cameron, "this vain and foolish Frenchman
seeks again to lead you astray, to lead you into war that will bring
ruin to you and to your children; and this lying snake from your
ancient enemies, the Sioux, thinking you are foolish children, seeks
to make you fight against the great White Mother across the seas. He
has been talking like a babbling old man, from whom the years have
taken wisdom, when he says that the half-breeds and Indians can drive
the white man from these plains. Has he told you how many are the
children of the White Mother, how many are the soldiers in her army?
Listen to me, and look! Get me many branches from the trees," he
commanded sharply to some young Indians standing near.
So completely were the Indians under the thrall of his speech that
a dozen of them sprang at once to get branches from the poplar trees
near by.
"I will show you," said Cameron, "how many are the White Mother's
soldiers. See,"--he held up both hands and then stuck up a small
twig in the sand to indicate the number ten. Ten of these small
twigs he set in a row and by a larger stick indicated a hundred, and
so on till he had set forth in the sandy soil a diagrammatic
representation of a hundred thousand men, the Indians following
closely his every movement. "And all these men," he continued, "are
armed with rifles and with great big guns that speak like thunder.
And these are only a few of the White Mother's soldiers. How many
Indians and half-breeds do you think there are with rifles?" He set
in a row sticks to represent a thousand men. "See," he cried, "so
many." Then he added another similar row. "Perhaps, if all the
Indians gathered, so many with rifles. No more. Now look," he said,
"no big guns, only a few bullets, a little powder, a little food. Ha,
ha!" he laughed contemptuously. "The Sioux snake is a fool. His
tongue must be stopped. My Indian brothers here will not listen to
him, but there are others whose hearts are like the hearts of little
children who may listen to his lying words. The Sioux snake must be
caught and put in a cage, and this I do now."
As he uttered the words Cameron sprang for the Sioux, but quicker
than his leap the Sioux darted through the crowding Indians who,
perceiving Cameron's intent, thrust themselves in his path and
enabled the Sioux to get away into the brush behind.
"Head him off, Jerry," yelled Cameron, whistling sharply at the
same time for his men, while he darted for his horse and threw
himself upon it. The whole camp was in a seething uproar.
"Back!" yelled Cameron, drawing his gun. The Indians fell away
from him like waves from a speeding vessel. On the other side of the
little bluff he caught sight of a mounted Indian flying toward the
mountains and with a cry he started in pursuit. It took only a few
minutes for Cameron to discover that he was gaining rapidly upon his
man. But the rough rocky country was not far away in front of them,
and here was abundant chance for hiding. Closer and closer he drew to
his flying enemy--a hundred yards--seventy-five yards--fifty yards
only separated them.
"Halt!" cried Cameron, "or I shoot."
But the Indian, throwing himself on the far side of his pony, urged
him to his topmost speed.
Cameron steadied himself for a moment, took careful aim and fired.
The flying pony stumbled, recovered himself, stumbled again and fell.
But even before he reached the earth his rider had leaped free, and,
still some thirty yards in advance, sped onward. Half a dozen strides
and Cameron's horse was upon him, and, giving him the shoulder, hurled
the Indian senseless to earth. In a flash Cameron was at his side,
turned him over and discovered not the Sioux Chief but another Indian
quite unknown to him.
His rage and disappointment were almost beyond his control. For an
instant he held his gun poised as if to strike, but the blow did not
fall. His self command came back. He put up his gun, turned quickly
away from the prostrate Indian, flung himself upon his horse and set
off swiftly for the camp. It was but a mile distant, but in the brief
time consumed in reaching it he had made up his mind as to his line of
action. Unless his men had captured the Sioux it was almost certain
that he had made his escape to the canyon, and once in the canyon
there was little hope of his being taken. It was of the first
importance that he should not appear too deeply concerned over his
failure to take his man.
With this thought in his mind Cameron loped easily into the Indian
camp. He found the young braves in a state of feverish excitement.
Armed with guns and clubs, they gathered about their Chiefs clamoring
to be allowed to wipe out these representatives of the Police who had
dared to attempt an arrest of this distinguished guest of theirs. As
Cameron appeared the uproar quieted somewhat and the Indians gathered
about him, eagerly waiting his next move.
Cameron cantered up to Running Stream and, looking round upon the
crowding and excited braves, he said, with a smile of cool
indifference:
"The Sioux snake has slid away in the grass. He has missed his
breakfast. My brother was about to eat. After he has eaten we will
have some quiet talk."
So saying, he swung himself from his saddle, drew the reins over
his horse's ears and, throwing himself down beside a camp fire, he
pulled out his pipe and proceeded to light it as calmly as if sitting
in a council-lodge.
The Indians were completely nonplussed. Nothing appeals more
strongly to the Indian than an exhibition of steady nerve. For some
moments they stood regarding Cameron with looks of mingled curiosity
and admiration with a strong admixture of impatience, for they had
thought of being done out of their great powwow with its attendant
joys of dance and feast, and if this Policeman should choose to remain
with them all day there could certainly be neither dancing nor
feasting for them. In the meantime, however, there was nothing for it
but to accept the situation created for them. This cool-headed
Mounted Policeman had planted himself by their camp- fire. They could
not very well drive him from their camp, nor could they converse with
him till he was ready.
As they were thus standing about in uncertainty of mind and temper
Jerry, the interpreter, came in and, with a grunt of recognition,
threw himself down by Cameron beside the fire. After some further
hesitation the Indians began to busy themselves once more with their
breakfast. In the group about the campfire beside which Cameron had
placed himself was the Chief, Running Stream. The presence of the
Policeman beside his fire was most embarrassing to the Chief, for no
man living has a keener sense of the obligations of hospitality than
has the Indian. But the Indian hates to eat in the presence of a
white man unless the white man shares his meal. Hence Running Stream
approached Cameron with a courteous request that he would eat with
them.
"Thanks, Running Stream, I have eaten, but I am sure Jerry here
will be glad of some breakfast," said Cameron cordially, who had no
desire whatever to dip out of the very doubtful mess in the pot which
had been set down on the ground in the midst of the group around the
fire. Jerry, however, had no scruples in the matter and, like every
Indian and half-breed, was always ready for a meal. Having thus been
offered hospitality and having by proxy accepted it, Cameron was in
position to discuss with the Chief in a judicial if not friendly
spirit the matter he had in hand.
Breakfast over, Cameron offered his tobacco-pouch to the Chief,
who, gravely helping himself to a pipeful, passed it on to his
neighbor who, having done likewise, passed it in turn to the man next
him till the tobacco was finished and the empty pouch returned with
due gravity to the owner.
Relations of friendly diplomacy being thus established, the whole
party sat smoking in solemn silence until the pipes were smoked out.
Then Cameron, knocking the ashes from his pipe, opened up the matter
in hand, with Jerry interpreting.
"The Sioux snake," he began quietly, "will be hungry for his
breakfast. Honest men do not run away before breakfast."
"Huh," grunted Running Stream, non-committal.
"The Police will get him in due time," continued Cameron in a tone
of quiet indifference. "He will cease to trouble our Indian brothers
with foolish lies. The prison gates are strong and will soon close
upon this stranger with the forked tongue."
Again the Chief grunted, still non-committal.
"It would be a pity if any of your young men should give heed to
these silly tales. None of your wise men have done so. In the Sioux
country there is frequent war between the soldiers and the Indians
because bad men wish to wrong the Indians and the Indians grow angry
and fight, but in this country white men are punished who do wrong to
Indians. This Running Stream knows to be true."
"Huh," grunted Running Stream acquiescing.
"When Indians do wrong to white men it is just that the Indians
should be punished as well. The Police do justly between the white
man and the Indian. My brother knows this to be true."
"Huh," again grunted Running Stream with an uneasy look on his
face.
"Therefore when young and foolish braves steal and kill cattle they
must be punished. They must be taught to keep the law." Here
Cameron's voice grew gentle as a child's, but there was in its tone
something that made the Chief glance quickly at his face.
"Huh, my young men no steal cattle," he said sullenly.
"No? I am glad to hear that. I believe that is true, and that is
why I smoke with my brother beside his camp fire. But some young men
in this band have stolen cattle, and I want my brother to find them
that I might take them with me to the Commissioner."
"Not know any Indian take cattle," said Running Stream in surly
defiance.
"There are four skins and four heads lying in the bluff up yonder,
Running Stream. I am going to take those with me to the Commissioner
and I am sure he would like to see you about those skins." Cameron's
manner continued to be mild but there ran through his speech an
undertone of stern resolution that made the Indian squirm a bit.
"Not know any Indian take cattle," repeated Running Stream, but
with less defiance.
"Then it would be well for my brother to find out the thieves,
for," and here Cameron paused and looked the Chief steadily in the
face for a few moments, "for we are to take them back with us or we
will ask the Chief to come and explain to the Commissioner why he
does not know what his young men are doing."
"No Blackfeet Indian take cattle," said the Chief once more.
"Good," said Cameron. "Then it must be the Bloods, or the Piegans
or the Stonies. We will call their Chiefs together."
There was no hurry in Cameron's manner. He had determined to spend
the day if necessary in running down these thieves. At his
suggestion Running Stream called together the Chiefs of the various
bands of Indians represented. From his supplies Cameron drew forth
some more tobacco and, passing it round the circle of Chiefs, calmly
waited until all had smoked their pipes out, after which he proceeded
to lay the case before them.
"My brothers are not thieves. The Police believe them to be honest
men, but unfortunately among them there have crept in some who are
not honest. In the bluff yonder are four hides and four heads of
steers, two of them from my own herd. Some bad Indians have stolen
and killed these steers and they are here in this camp to-day, and I
am going to take them with me to the Commissioner. Running Stream is
a great Chief and speaks no lies and he tells me that none of his
young men have taken these cattle. Will the Chief of the Stonies, the
Chief of the Bloods, the Chief of the Piegans say the same for their
young men?"
"The Stonies take no cattle," answered an Indian whom Cameron
recognized as the leading representative of that tribe present.
"How many Stonies here?"
The Indian held up six fingers.
"Ha, only six. What about the Bloods and the Piegans?" demanded
Cameron. "It is not for me," he continued, when there was no reply,
"to discover the cattle-thieves. It is for the Big Chief of this
camp, it is for you, Running Stream, and when you have found the
thieves I shall arrest them and bring them to the Commissioner, for I
will not return without them. Meantime I go to bring here the skins."
So saying, Cameron rode leisurely away, leaving Jerry to keep an
eye upon the camp. For more than an hour they talked among
themselves, but without result. Finally they came to Jerry, who,
during his years with the Police, had to a singular degree gained the
confidence of the Indians. But Jerry gave them little help. There had
been much stealing of cattle by some of the tribes, not by all. The
Police had been patient, but they had become weary. They had their
suspicions as to the thieves.
Eagle Feather was anxious to know what Indians were suspected.
"Not the Stonies and not the Blackfeet," replied Jerry quietly. It
was a pity, he continued, that innocent men should suffer for the
guilty. He knew Running Stream was no thief, but Running Stream must
find out the thieves in the band under his control. How would Running
Stream like to have the great Chief of the Blackfeet, Crowfoot, know
that he could not control the young men under his command and did not
know what they were doing?
This suggestion of Jerry had a mighty effect upon the Blackfeet
Chief, for old Crowfoot was indeed a great Chief and a mighty power
with his band, and to fall into disfavor with him would be a serious
matter for any junior Chief in the tribe.
Again they withdrew for further discussion and soon it became
evident that Jerry's cunning suggestions had sown seeds of discord
among them. The dispute waxed hot and fierce, not as to the guilty
parties, who were apparently acknowledged to be the Piegans, but as
to the course to be pursued. Running Stream had no intention that
his people and himself should become involved in the consequences of
the crimes of other tribes whom the Blackfeet counted their inferiors.
Eagle Feather and his Piegans must bear the consequences of their own
misdeeds. On the other hand Eagle Feather pleaded hard that they
should stand together in this matter, that the guilty parties could
not be disclosed. The Police could not punish them all, and all the
more necessary was it that they should hold together because of the
larger enterprise into which they were about to enter.
The absence of the Sioux Chief Onawata, however, weakened the bond
of unity which he more than any other had created and damped the
ardor of the less eager of the conspirators. It was likewise a
serious blow to their hopes of success that the Police knew all their
plans. Running Stream finally gave forth his decision, which was that
the thieves should be given up, and that they all should join in a
humble petition to the Police for leniency, pleading the necessity of
hunger on their hunting-trip, and, as for the larger enterprise, that
they should apparently abandon it until suspicion had been allayed and
until the plans of their brothers in the North were more nearly
matured. The time for striking had not yet come.
In this decision all but the Piegans agreed. In vain Eagle Feather
contended that they should stand together and defy the Police to
prove any of them guilty. In vain he sought to point out that if in
this crisis they surrendered the Piegans to the Police never again
could they count upon the Piegans to support them in any enterprise.
But Running Stream and the others were resolved. The thieves must be
given up.
At the very moment in which this decision had been reached Cameron
rode in, carrying with him the incriminating hides.
"Here, Jerry," he said. "You take charge of these and bring them
to the Commissioner."
"All right," said Jerry, taking the hides from Cameron's horse.
"What is up, Jerry?" said Cameron in a low voice as the half-breed
was untying the bundle.
Quietly Cameron walked over to the group of excited Indians. As he
approached they opened their circle to receive him.
"My brother has discovered the thief," he said. "And after all a
thief is easily found among honest men."
Slowly and deliberately his eye traveled round the circle of faces,
keenly scrutinizing each in turn. When he came to Eagle Feather he
paused, gazed fixedly at him, took a single step in his direction,
and, suddenly leveling an accusing finger at him, cried in a loud
voice:
"I have found him. This man is the thief."
Slowly he walked up to the Indian, who remained stoically
motionless, laid his hand upon his wrist and said in a clear ringing
voice heard over the encampment:
"Eagle Feather, I arrest you in the name of the Queen!" And before
another word could be spoken or a movement made Eagle Feather stood
handcuffed, a prisoner.
"That boy is worse, Mrs. Cameron, decidedly worse, and I wash my
hands of all responsibility." The old army surgeon was clearly
annoyed.
Mandy sat silent, weary with watching and weary with the conflict
that had gone on intermittently during the past three days. The
doctor was determined to have the gangrenous foot off. That was the
simplest solution of the problem before him and the foot would have
come off days ago if he had had his way. But the Indian boy had
vehemently opposed this proposal. "One foot--me go die," was his
ultimatum, and through all the fever and delirium this was his
continuous refrain. In this determination his nurse supported him,
for she could not bring herself to the conviction that amputation was
absolutely necessary, and, besides, of all the melancholy and useless
driftwood that drives hither and thither with the ebb and flow of
human life, she could imagine none more melancholy and more useless
than an Indian crippled of a foot. Hence she supported the boy in his
ultimatum, "One foot--me go die."
"That foot ought to come off," repeated the doctor, beginning the
controversy anew. "Otherwise the boy will die."
"But, doctor," said Mandy wearily, "just think how pitiable, how
helpless that boy will be. Death is better. And, besides, I have
not quite given up hope that--"
The doctor snorted his contempt for her opinion; and only his
respect for her as Cameron's wife and for the truly extraordinary
powers and gifts in her profession which she had displayed during the
past three days held back the wrathful words that were at his lips.
It was late in the afternoon and the doctor had given many hours to
this case, riding back and forward from the fort every day, but all
this he would not have grudged could he have had his way with his
patient.
"Well, I have done my best," he said, "and now I must go back to my
work."
"I know, doctor, I know," pleaded Mandy. "You have been most kind
and I thank you from my heart." She rose and offered him her hand.
"Don't think me too awfully obstinate, and please forgive me if you
do."
The doctor took the outstretched hand grudgingly.
"Obstinate!" he exclaimed. "Of all the obstinate creatures--"
"Oh, I am afraid I am. But I don't want to be unreasonable. You
see, the boy is so splendidly plucky and such a fine chap."
The doctor grunted.
"He is a fine chap, doctor, and I can't bear to have him crippled,
and--" She paused abruptly, her lips beginning to quiver. She was
near the limit of her endurance.
"You would rather have him dead, eh? All right, if that suits you
better it makes no difference to me," said the doctor gruffly,
picking up his bag. "Good-by."
"Doctor, you will come back again to-morrow?"
"To-morrow? Why should I come back to-morrow? I can do no more--
unless you agree to amputation. There is no use coming back to-
morrow. I have other cases waiting on me. I can't give all my time
to this Indian." The contempt in the doctor's voice for a mere Indian
stung her like a whip. On Mandy's cheek, pale with her long vigil, a
red flush appeared and in her eye a light that would have warned the
doctor had he known her better.
"Is not this Indian a human being?" she asked quietly.
But the doctor was very impatient and anxious to be gone.
"A human being? Yes, of course, a human being, but there are human
beings and human beings. But if you mean an Indian is as good as a
white man, frankly I don't agree with you."
"You have given a great deal of your time, doctor," said Mandy with
quiet deliberation, "and I am most grateful. I can ask no more for
THIS INDIAN. I only regret that I have been forced to ask so much of
your time. Good-by." There was a ring as of steel in her voice. The
doctor became at once apologetic.
"What--eh?--I beg your pardon," he stammered.
"It is not at all necessary. Thank you again for all your service.
Good-by."
"Eh? I don't quite--"
"Good-by, doctor, and again thank you."
"Well, you know quite well I can't do any more," said the old
doctor crossly.
"No, I don't think you can."
"Eh--what? Well, good-by." And awkwardly the doctor walked away,
rather uncertain as to her meaning but with a feeling that he had
been dismissed.
"Most impossible person!" he muttered as he left the tent door,
indignant with himself that no fitting reply would come to his lips.
And not until he had mounted his horse and taken the trail was he
able to give full and adequate expression to his feelings, and even
then it took him some considerable time to do full justice to himself
and to the situation.
Meantime the nurse had turned back to her watch, weary and
despairing. In a way that she could not herself understand the
Indian boy had awakened her interest and even her affection. His
fine stoical courage, his warm and impulsive gratitude excited her
admiration and touched her heart. Again arose to her lips a cry that
had been like a refrain in her heart for the past three days, "Oh, if
only Dr. Martin were here!" Her experience and training under Dr.
Martin had made it only too apparent that the old army surgeon was
archaic in his practice and method.
"I know something could be done!" she said aloud, as she bent over
her patient. "If only Dr. Martin were here! Poor boy! Oh! I wish
he were here!"
As if in answer to her cry there was outside a sound of galloping
horses. She ran to the tent door and before her astonished eyes
there drew up at her tent Dr. Martin, her sister-in-law and the
ever-faithful Smith.
"Oh, oh, Dr. Martin!" she cried, running to him with both hands
outstretched, and could say no more.
"Hello, what's up? Say, what the deuce have they been doing to
you?" The doctor was quite wrathful.
"Oh, I am glad, that's all."
"Glad? Well, you show your joy in a mighty queer way."
"She's done out, Doctor," cried Moira, springing from her horse and
running to her sister-in-law. "I ought to have come before to
relieve her," she continued penitently, with her arms round Mandy,
"but I knew so little, and besides I thought the doctor was here."
"He was here," said Mandy, recovering herself. "He has just gone,
and oh, I am glad. He wanted to cut his foot off."
"Cut his foot off? Whose foot off? His own?" said Dr. Martin.
"But I am glad! How did you get here in all the world?"
"Your telegram came when I was away," said the doctor. "I did not
get it for a day, then I came at once."
"My telegram?"
"Yes, your telegram. I have it here--no, I've left it somewhere--
but I certainly got a telegram from you."
"From me? I never sent a telegram."
"I beg your pardon, Mrs. Cameron. I understood you to desire Dr.
Martin's presence, and--I ventured to send a wire in your name. I
hope you will forgive the liberty," said Smith, red to his hair-
roots and looking over his horse's neck with a most apologetic air.
"Forgive the liberty?" cried Mandy. "Why, bless you, Mr. Smith,
you are my guardian angel," running to him and shaking him warmly by
the hand.
"And he brought, us here, too," cried Moira. "He has been awfully
good to me these days. I do not know what I should have done without
him."
Meantime Smith was standing first on one foot and then on the other
in a most unhappy state of mind.
"Guess I will be going back," he said in an agony of awkwardness
and confusion. "It is getting kind of late."
"What? Going right away?" exclaimed Mandy.
"I've got some chores to look after, and I guess none of you are
coming back now anyway."
"Well, hold on a bit," said the doctor. "We'll see what's doing
inside. Let's get the lie of things."
"Guess you don't need me any more," continued Smith. "Good-by."
And he climbed on to his horse. "I have got to get back. So long."
No one appeared to have any good reason why Smith should remain,
and so he rode away.
"Good-by, Mr. Smith," called out Mandy impulsively. "You have
really saved my life, I assure you. I was in utter despair."
"Good-by, Mr. Smith," cried Moira, waving her hand with a bright
smile. "You have saved me too from dying many a time these three
days."
With an awkward wave Smith answered these farewells and rode down
the trail.
"He is really a fine fellow," said Mandy. "Always doing something
for people."
"That is just it," cried Moira. "He has spent his whole time these
three days doing things for me."
"Ah, no wonder," said the doctor. "A most useful chap. But what's
the trouble here? Let's get at the business."
Mandy gave him a detailed history of the case, the doctor meanwhile
making an examination of the patient's general condition.
"And the doctor would have his foot off, but I would not stand for
that," cried Mandy indignantly as she closed her history.
"H'm! Looks bad enough to come off, I should say. I wish I had
been here a couple of days ago. It may have to come off all right."
"Oh, Dr. Martin!"
"But not just to-night."
"Oh, I knew it."
"Not to-night," I said. "I don't know what the outcome may be, but
it looks as bad as it well can."
"Oh, that's all right," cried Mandy cheerfully. Her burden of
responsibility was lifted. Her care was gone. "I knew it would be
all right."
"Well, whether it will or not I cannot say. But one thing I do
know, you've got to trot off to sleep. Show me the ropes and then
off you go. Who runs this camp anyway?"
"Oh, the Chief does, Chief Trotting Wolf. I will call him," cried
Mandy. "He has been very good to me. I will get him." And she ran
from the tent to find the Chief.
"Isn't she wonderful?" said Moira.
"Wonderful? I should say so. But she is played right out I can
see," replied the doctor. "I must get comfortable quarters for you
both."
"But do you not want some one?" said Moira. "Do you not want me?"
"Do I want you?" echoed the doctor, looking at her as she stood in
the glow of the westering sun shining through the canvas tent. "Do I
want you?" he repeated with deliberate emphasis. "Well, you can just
bet that is just what I do want."
A slight flush appeared on the girl's face.
"I mean," she said hurriedly, "cannot I be of some help?"
"Most certainly, most certainly," said the doctor, noting the
flush. "Your help will be invaluable after a bit. But first you
must get Mrs. Cameron to sleep. She has been on this job, I
understand, for three days. She is quite played out. And you, too,
need sleep."
"Oh, I am quite fit. I do not need sleep. I am quite ready to
take my sister-in-law's place, that is, as far as I can. And you
will surely need some one--to help you I mean." The doctor's eyes
were upon her face. Under his gaze her voice faltered. The glow of
the sunset through the tent walls illumined her face with a wonderful
radiance.
"Miss Moira," said the doctor with abrupt vehemence, "I wish I had
the nerve to tell you just how much--"
"Hush!" cried the girl, her glowing face suddenly pale, "they are
coming."
"Here is the Chief, Dr. Martin," cried Mandy, ushering in that
stately individual. The doctor saluted the Chief in due form and
said:
"Could we have another tent, Chief, for these ladies? Just beside
this tent here, so that they can have a little sleep."
The Chief grunted a doubtful acquiescence, but in due time a tent
very much dilapidated was pitched upon the clean dry ground close
beside that in which the sick boy lay. While this was being done the
doctor was making a further examination of his patient. With admiring
eyes, Moira followed the swift movements of his deft fingers. There
was no hesitation. There was no fumbling. There was the sure
indication of accurate knowledge, the obvious self- confidence of
experience in everything he did. Even to her untutored eyes the
doctor seemed to be walking with a very firm tread.
At length, after an hour's work, he turned to Mandy who was
assisting him and said:
"Now you can both go to sleep. I shall need you no more till
morning. I shall keep an eye on him. Off you go. Good-night."
"You will be sure to call me if I can be of service," said Mandy.
"I shall do no such thing. I expect you to sleep. I shall look
after this end of the job."
"He is very sure of himself, is he not?" said Moira in a low tone
to her sister-in-law as they passed out of the tent.
"He has a right to be," said Mandy proudly. "He knows his work,
and now I feel as if I can sleep in peace. What a blessed thing
sleep is," she added, as, without undressing, she tumbled on to the
couch prepared for her.
"Is Dr. Martin very clever? I mean, is he an educated man?"
"What?" cried Mandy. "Dr. Martin what?"
"Is he very clever? Is he--an educated man?"
"Eh, what?" she repeated, yawning desperately. "Oh, I was asleep."
"Is he clever?"
"Clever? Well, rather--" Her voice was trailing off again into
slumber.
"And is he an educated man?"
"Educated? Knows his work if that's what you mean. Oh-h--but I'm
sleepy."
"Is he a gentleman?"
"Eh? What?" Mandy sat up straight. "A gentleman? I should say
so! That is, he is a man all through right to his toe-tips. And
gentle--more gentle than any woman I ever saw. Will that do?
Good-night." And before Moira could make reply she was sound asleep.
Before the night was over the opportunity was given the doctor to
prove his manhood, and in a truly spectacular manner. For shortly
after midnight Moira found herself sitting bolt upright, wide-awake
and clutching her sister-in-law in wild terror. Outside their tent
the night was hideous with discordant noises, yells, whoops, cries,
mingled with the beating of tom-toms. Terrified and trembling, the
two girls sprang to the door, and, lifting the flap, peered out. It
was the party of braves returning from the great powwow so rudely
interrupted by Cameron. They were returning in an evil mood, too, for
they were enraged at the arrest of Eagle Feather and three accomplices
in his crime, disappointed in the interruption of their sun dance and
its attendant joys of feast and song, and furious at what appeared to
them to be the overthrow of the great adventure for which they had
been preparing and planning for the past two months. This was indeed
the chief cause of their rage, for it seemed as if all further
attempts at united effort among the Western tribes had been frustrated
by the discovery of their plans, by the flight of their leader, and by
the treachery of the Blackfeet Chief, Running Stream, in surrendering
their fellow- tribesmen to the Police. To them that treachery
rendered impossible any coalition between the Piegans and the
Blackfeet. Furthermore, before their powwow had been broken up there
had been distributed among them a few bottles of whisky provided
beforehand by the astute Sioux as a stimulus to their enthusiasm
against a moment of crisis when such stimulus should be necessary.
These bottles, in the absence of their great leader, were distributed
among the tribes by Running Stream as a peace-offering, but for
obvious reason not until the moment came for their parting from each
other.
Filled with rage and disappointment, and maddened with the bad
whisky they had taken, they poured into the encampment with wild
shouting accompanied by the discharge of guns and the beating of
drums. In terror the girls clung to each other, gazing out upon the
horrid scene.
"Whatever is this, Mandy?" cried Moira.
But her sister-in-law could give her little explanation. The
moonlight, glowing bright as day, revealed a truly terrifying
spectacle. A band of Indians, almost naked and hideously painted,
were leaping, shouting, beating drums and firing guns. Out from the
tents poured the rest of the band to meet them, eagerly inquiring into
the cause of their excitement. Soon fires were lighted and kettles
put on, for the Indian's happiness is never complete unless associated
with feasting, and the whole band prepared itself for a time of
revelry.
As the girls stood peering out upon this terrible scene they became
aware of the doctor standing at their side.
"Say, they seem to be cutting up rather rough, don't they?" he said
coolly. "I think as a precautionary measure you had better step over
into the other tent."
Hastily gathering their belongings, they ran across with the doctor
to his tent, from which they continued to gaze upon the weird
spectacle before them.
About the largest fire in the center of the camp the crowd
gathered, Chief Trotting Wolf in the midst, and were harangued by one
of the returning braves who was evidently reciting the story of their
experiences and whose tale was received with the deepest interest and
was punctuated by mad cries and whoops. The one English word that
could be heard was the word "Police," and it needed no interpreter to
explain to the watchers that the chief object of fury to the crowding,
gesticulating Indians about the fire was the Policeman who had been
the cause of their humiliation and disappointment. In a pause of the
uproar a loud exclamation from an Indian arrested the attention of the
band. Once more he uttered his exclamation and pointed to the tent
lately occupied by the ladies. Quickly the whole band about the fire
appeared to bunch together preparatory to rush in the direction
indicated, but before they could spring forward Trotting Wolf,
speaking rapidly and with violent gesticulation, stood in their path.
But his voice was unheeded. He was thrust aside and the whole band
came rushing madly toward the tent lately occupied by the ladies.
"Get back from the door," said the doctor, speaking rapidly.
"These chaps seem to be somewhat excited. I wish I had my gun," he
continued, looking about the tent for a weapon of some sort. "This
will do," he said, picking up a stout poplar pole that had been used
for driving the tent pegs. "Stay inside here. Don't move till I tell
you."
"But they will kill you," cried Moira, laying her hand upon his
arm. "You must not go out."
"Nonsense!" said the doctor almost roughly. "Kill me? Not much.
I'll knock some of their blocks off first." So saying, he lifted the
flap of the tent and passed out just as the rush of maddened Indians
came.
Upon the ladies' tent they fell, kicked the tent poles down, and,
seizing the canvas ripped it clear from its pegs. Some moments they
spent searching the empty bed, then turned with renewed cries toward
the other tent before which stood the doctor, waiting, grim, silent,
savage. For a single moment they paused, arrested by the silent
figure, then with a whoop a drink-maddened brave sprang toward the
tent, his rifle clubbed to strike. Before he could deliver his blow
the doctor, stepping swiftly to one side, swung his poplar club hard
upon the uplifted arms, sent the rifle crashing to the ground and with
a backward swing caught the astonished brave on the exposed head and
dropped him to the earth as if dead.
"Take that, you dog!" he cried savagely. "Come on, who's next?" he
shouted, swinging his club as a player might a baseball bat.
Before the next rush, however, help came in an unexpected form.
The tent flap was pushed back and at the doctor's side stood an
apparition that checked the Indians' advance and stilled their cries.
It was the Indian boy, clad in a white night robe of Mandy's
providing, his rifle in his hand, his face ghastly in the moonlight
and his eyes burning like flames of light. One cry he uttered, weird,
fierce, unearthly, but it seemed to pierce like a knife through the
stillness that had fallen. Awed, sobered, paralyzed, the Indians
stood motionless. Then from their ranks ran Chief Trotting Wolf,
picked up the rifle of the Indian who still lay insensible on the
ground, and took his place beside the boy.
A few words he spoke in a voice that rang out fiercely imperious.
Still the Indians stood motionless. Again the Chief spoke in short,
sharp words of command, and, as they still hesitated, took one swift
stride toward the man that stood nearest, swinging his rifle over his
head. Forward sprang the doctor to his side, his poplar club likewise
swung up to strike. Back fell the Indians a pace or two, the Chief
following them with a torrential flow of vehement invective. Slowly,
sullenly the crowd gave back, cowed but still wrathful, and beginning
to mutter in angry undertones. Once more the tent flap was pushed
aside and there issued two figures who ran to the side of the Indian
boy, now swaying weakly upon his rifle.
"My poor boy!" cried Mandy, throwing her arms round about him, and,
steadying him as he let his rifle fall, let him sink slowly to the
ground.
"You cowards!" cried Moira, seizing the rifle that the boy had
dropped and springing to the doctor's side. "Look at what you have
done!" She turned and pointed indignantly to the swooning boy.
With an exclamation of wrath the doctor stepped back to Mandy's
aid, forgetful of the threatening Indians and mindful only of his
patient. Quickly he sprang into the tent, returning with a
stimulating remedy, bent over the boy and worked with him till he
came back again to life.
Once more the Chief, who with the Indians had been gazing upon this
scene, turned and spoke to his band, this time in tones of quiet
dignity, pointing to the little group behind him. Silent and subdued
the Indians listened, their quick impulses like those of children
stirred to sympathy for the lad and for those who would aid him.
Gradually the crowd drew off, separating into groups and gathering
about the various fires. For the time the danger was over.
Between them Dr. Martin and the Chief carried the boy into the tent
and laid him on his bed.
"What sort of beasts have you got out there anyway?" said the
doctor, facing the Chief abruptly.
"Him drink bad whisky," answered the Chief, tipping up his hand.
"Him crazee," touching his head with his forefinger.
"Crazy! Well, I should say. What they want is a few ounces of
lead."
The Chief made no reply, but stood with his eyes turned admiringly
upon Moira's face.
"Squaw--him good," he said, pointing to the girl. "No 'fraid--much
brave--good."
"You are right enough there, Chief," replied the doctor heartily.
"Him you squaw?" inquired the Chief, pointing to Moira.
"Well--eh? No, not exactly," replied the doctor, much confused,
"that is--not yet I mean--"
"Huh! Him good squaw. Him good man," replied the Chief, pointing
first to Moira, then to the doctor.
Moira hurried to the tent door.
"They are all gone," she exclaimed. "Thank God! How awful they
are!"
"Huh!" replied the Chief, moving out past her. "Him drink, him
crazee--no drink, no crazee." At the door he paused, and, looking
back, said once more with increased emphasis, "Huh! Him good squaw,"
and finally disappeared.
"By Jove!" said the doctor with a delighted chuckle. "The old boy
is a man of some discernment I can see. But the kid and you saved
the day, Miss Moira."
"Oh, what nonsense you are talking. It was truly awful, and how
splendidly you--you--"
"Well, I caught him rather a neat one, I confess. I wonder if the
brute is sleeping yet. But you did the trick finally, Miss Moira."
The bitter weather following an autumn of unusual mildness had set
in with the New Year and had continued without a break for fifteen
days. A heavy fall of snow with a blizzard blowing sixty miles an
hour had made the trails almost impassable, indeed quite so to any
but to those bent on desperate business or to Her Majesty's North
West Mounted Police. To these gallant riders all trails stood open
at all seasons of the year, no matter what snow might fall or
blizzard blow, so long as duty called them forth.
The trail from the fort to the Big Horn Ranch, however, was so
wind-swept that the snow was blown away, which made the going fairly
easy, and the Superintendent, Inspector Dickson and Jerry trotted
along freely enough in the face of a keen southwester that cut to the
bone. It was surely some desperate business indeed that sent them out
into the face of that cutting wind which made even these hardy riders,
burned hard and dry by scorching suns and biting blizzards, wince and
shelter their faces with their gauntleted hands.
"Deuce of a wind, this!" said the Superintendent.
"It is the raw southwester that gets to the bone," replied
Inspector Dickson. "This will blow up a chinook before night."
"I wonder if he has got into shelter," said the Superintendent.
"This has been an unusually hard fortnight, and I am afraid he went
rather light."
"Oh, he's sure to be all right," replied the Inspector quickly.
"He was riding, but he took his snowshoes with him for timber work.
He's hardly the man to get caught and he won't quit easily."
"No, he won't quit, but there are times when human endurance fails.
Not that I fear anything like that for Cameron," added the
Superintendent hastily.
"Oh, he's not the man to fall down," replied the Inspector. "He
goes the limit, but he keeps his head. He's no reckless fool."
"Well, you ought to know him," said the Superintendent. "You have
been through some things together, but this last week has been about
the worst that I have known. This fortnight will be remembered in the
annals of this country. And it came so unexpectedly. What do you
think about it, Jerry?" continued the Superintendent, turning to the
half-breed.
"He good man--cold ver' bad--ver' long. S'pose catch heem on
plains--ver' bad."
The Inspector touched his horse to a canter. The vision that
floated before his mind's eye while the half-breed was speaking he
hated to contemplate.
"He's all right. He has come through too many tight places to fail
here," said the Inspector in a tone almost of defiance, and refused
to talk further upon the subject. But he kept urging the pace till
they drew up at the stables of the Big Horn Ranch.
The Inspector's first glance upon opening the stable door swept the
stall where Ginger was wont to conduct his melancholy ruminations. It
gave him a start to see the stall empty.
"Hello, Smith!" he cried as that individual appeared with a bundle
of hay from the stack in the yard outside. "Boss home?"
"Has Mr. Cameron returned?" inquired the Superintendent in the same
breath, and in spite of himself a note of anxiety had crept into his
voice. The three men stood waiting, their tense attitude expressing
the anxiety they would not put into words. The deliberate Smith, who
had transferred his services from old Thatcher to Cameron and who had
taken the ranch and all persons and things belonging to it into his
immediate charge, disposed of his bundle in a stall, and then facing
them said slowly:
"Guess he's all right."
"Is he home?" asked the Inspector sharply.
"Oh, he's home all right. Gone to bed, I think," answered Smith
with maddening calmness.
The Inspector cursed him between his teeth and turned away from the
others till his eyes should be clear again.
"We will just look in on Mrs. Cameron for a few minutes," said the
Superintendent. "We won't disturb him."
Leaving Jerry to put up their horses, they went into the ranch-
house and found the ladies in a state of suppressed excitement. Mandy
met them at the door with an eager welcome, holding out to them
trembling hands.
"Oh, I am so glad you have come!" she cried. "It was all I could
do to hold him back from going to you even as he was. He was quite
set on going and only lay down on promise that I should wake him in
an hour. Sit down here by the fire. An hour, mind you," she
continued, talking rapidly and under obvious excitement, "and him so
blind and exhausted that--" She paused abruptly, unable to command
her voice.
"He ought to sleep twelve hours straight," said the Superintendent
with emphasis, "and twenty-four would be better, with suitable breaks
for refreshment," he added in a lighter tone, glancing at Mandy's
face.
"Yes, indeed," she replied, "for he has had little enough to eat
the last three days. And that reminds me--" she hurried to the
pantry and returned with the teapot--"you must be cold,
Superintendent. Ah, this terrible cold! A hot cup of tea will be
just the thing. It will take only five minutes--and it is better
than punch, though perhaps you men do not think so." She laughed
somewhat wildly.
"Why, Mrs. Cameron," said the Superintendent in a shocked,
bantering voice, "how can you imagine we should be guilty of such
heresy--in this prohibition country, too?"
"Oh, I know you men," replied Mandy. "We keep some Scotch in the
house--beside the laudanum. Some people can't take tea, you know,"
she added with an uncertain smile, struggling to regain control of
herself. "But all the same, I am a nurse, and I know that after
exposure tea is better."
"Ah, well," replied the Superintendent, "I bow to your experience,"
making a brave attempt to meet her mood and declining to note her
unusual excitement.
In the specified five minutes the tea was ready.
"I could quite accept your tea-drinking theory, Mrs. Cameron," said
Inspector Dickson, "if--if, mark you--I should always get such tea as
this. But I don't believe Jerry here would agree."
Jerry, who had just entered, stood waiting explanation.
"Mrs. Cameron has just been upholding the virtue of a good cup of
tea, Jerry, over a hot Scotch after a cold ride. Now what's your
unbiased opinion?"
A slight grin wrinkled the cracks in Jerry's leather-skin face.
"Hot whisky--good for fun--for cold no good. Whisky good for
sleep--for long trail no good."
"Thank you, Jerry," cried Mandy enthusiastically.
"Oh, that's all right, Jerry," said the Inspector, joining in the
general laugh that followed, "but I don't think Miss Moira here would
agree with you in regard to the merits of her national beverage."
"Oh, I am not so sure," cried the young lady, entering into the
mood of the others. "Of course, I am Scotch and naturally stand up
for my country and for its customs, but, to be strictly honest, I
remember hearing my brother say that Scotch was bad training for
football."
"Good again!" cried Mandy. "You see, when anything serious is on,
the wisest people cut out the Scotch, as the boys say."
"You are quite right, Mrs. Cameron," said the Superintendent,
becoming grave. "On the long trail and in the bitter cold we drop
the Scotch and bank on tea. As for whisky, the Lord knows it gives
the Police enough trouble in this country. If it were not for the
whisky half our work would be cut out. But tell me, how is Mr.
Cameron?" he added, as he handed back his cup for another supply of
tea.
"Done up, or more nearly done up than ever I have seen him, or than
I ever want to see him again." Mandy paused abruptly, handed him his
cup of tea, passed into the pantry and for some moments did not appear
again.
"Oh, it was terrible to see him," said Moira, clasping her hands
and speaking in an eager, excited voice. "He came, poor boy,
stumbling toward the door. He had to leave his horse, you know, some
miles away. Through the window we saw him coming along--and we did
not know him--he staggered as if--as if--actually as if he were
drunk." Her laugh was almost hysterical. "And he could not find the
latch--and when we opened the door his eyes were--oh!--so
terrible!--wild--and bloodshot--and blind! Oh, I cannot tell you
about it!" she exclaimed, her voice breaking and her tears falling
fast. "And he could hardly speak to us. We had to cut off his
snow-shoes--and his gauntlets and his clothes were like iron. He
could not sit down--he just--just--lay on the floor--till--my
sister--" Here the girl's sobs interrupted her story.
"Great Heavens!" cried the Superintendent. "What a mercy he
reached home!"
The Inspector had risen and came round to Moira's side.
"Don't try to tell me any more," he said in a husky voice, patting
her gently on the shoulder. "He is here with us, safe, poor chap. My
God!" he cried in an undertone, "what he must have gone through!"
At this point Mandy returned and took her place again quietly by
the fire.
"It was this sudden spell of cold that nearly killed him," she said
in a quiet voice. "He was not fully prepared for it, and it caught
him at the end of his trip, too, when he was nearly played out. You
see, he was five weeks away and he had only expected to be three."
"Yes, I know, Mrs. Cameron," said the Inspector.
"An unexpected emergency seems to have arisen."
"I don't know what it was," replied Mandy. "He could tell me
little, but he was determined to go on to the fort."
"I know something about his plans," said the Inspector. "He had
proposed a tour of the reserves, beginning with the Piegans and
ending with the Bloods."
"And we know something of his work, too, Mrs. Cameron," said the
Superintendent. "Superintendent Strong has sent us a very fine
report indeed of your husband's work. We do not talk about these
things, you know, in the Police, but we can appreciate them all the
same. Superintendent Strong's letter is one you would like to keep.
I shall send it to you. Knowing Superintendent Strong as I do--"
"I know him too," said Mandy with a little laugh.
"Well, then, you will be able to appreciate all the more any word
of commendation he would utter. He practically attributes the
present state of quiet and the apparent collapse of this conspiracy
business to your husband's efforts. This, of course, is no
compensation for his sufferings or yours, but I think it right that
you should know the facts." The Superintendent had risen to his feet
and had delivered his little speech in his very finest manner.
"Thank you," said Mandy simply.
"We had expected him back a week ago," said the Inspector. "We
know he must have had some serious cause for delay."
"I do not know about that," replied Mandy, "but I do know he was
most anxious to go on to the fort. He had some information to give,
he said, which was of the first importance. And I am glad you are
here. He will be saved that trip, which would really be dangerous in
his present condition. And I don't believe I could have stopped him,
but I should have gone with him. His hour will soon be up."
"Don't think of waking him," said the Superintendent. "We can wait
two hours, or three hours, or more if necessary. Let him sleep."
"He would waken himself if he were not so fearfully done up. He
has a trick of waking at any hour he sets," said Mandy.
A few minutes later Cameron justified her remarks by appearing from
the inner room. The men, accustomed as they were to the ravages of
the winter trail upon their comrades, started to their feet in
horror. Blindly Cameron felt his way to them, shading his blood-
shot eyes from the light. His face was blistered and peeled as if he
had come through a fire, his lips swollen and distorted, his hands
trembling and showing on every finger the marks of frost bite, and his
feet dragging as he shuffled across the floor.
"My dear fellow, my dear fellow," cried the Inspector, springing up
to meet him and grasping him by both arms to lead him to a chair.
"You ran it too close that time. Here is the Superintendent to
lecture you. Sit down, old man, sit down right here." The Inspector
deposited him in the chair, and, striding hurriedly to the window,
stood there looking out upon the bleak winter snow.
"Hello, Cameron," said the Superintendent, shaking him by the hand
with hearty cheerfulness. "Glad, awfully glad to see you. Fine bit
of work, very fine bit of work. Very complimentary report about you."
"I don't know what you refer to, sir," said Cameron, speaking
thickly, "but I am glad you are here, for I have an important
communication to make."
"Oh, that's all right," said the Superintendent. "Don't worry
about that. And take your own time. First of all, how are you
feeling? Snow-blind, I see," he continued, critically examining him,
"and generally used up."
"Rather knocked up," replied Cameron, his tongue refusing to move
with its accustomed ease. "But shall be fit in a day or two. Beastly
sleepy, but cannot sleep somehow. Shall feel better when my mind is
at rest. I cannot report fully just now."
"Oh, let the report rest. We know something already."
"How is that?"
"Superintendent Strong has sent us in a report, and a very
creditable report, too."
"Oh," replied Cameron indifferently. "Well, the thing I want to
say is that though all looks quiet--there is less horse stealing this
month, and less moving about from the reserves--yet I believe a
serious outbreak is impending."
The Inspector, who had come around and taken a seat beside him,
touched his knee at this point with an admonishing pressure.
"Eh?" said Cameron, turning toward him. "Oh, my people here know.
You need not have any fear about them." A little smile distorted his
face as he laid his hand upon his wife's shoulder. "But--where was I?
I cannot get the hang of things." He was as a man feeling his way
through a maze.
"Oh, let it go," said the Inspector. "Wait till you have had some
sleep."
"No, I must--I must get this out. Well, anyway, the principal
thing is that Big Bear, Beardy, Poundmaker--though I am not sure
about Poundmaker--have runners on every reserve and they are
arranging for a big meeting in the spring, to which every tribe North
and West is to send representatives. That Frenchman--what's his
name?--I'll forget my own next--"
"Riel?" suggested the Inspector.
"Yes, Riel. That Frenchman is planning a big coup in the spring.
You know they presented him with a house the other day, ready
furnished, at Batoche, to keep him in the country. Oh, the half-
breeds are very keen on this. And what is worse, I believe a lot of
whites are in with them too. A chap named Jackson, and another named
Scott, and Isbister and some others. These names are spoken of on
every one of our reserves. I tell you, sir," he said, turning his
blind eyes toward the Superintendent, "I consider it very serious
indeed. And worst of all, the biggest villain of the lot, Little
Pine, Cree Chief you know, our bitterest enemy--except Little Thunder,
who fortunately is cleared out of the country--you remember, sir, that
chap Raven saw about that."
The Superintendent nodded.
"Well--where was I?--Oh, yes, Little Pine, the biggest villain of
them all, is somewhere about here. I got word of him when I was at
the Blood Reserve on my way home some ten days ago. I heard he was
with the Blackfeet, but I found no sign of him there. But he is in
the neighborhood, and he is specially bound to see old Crowfoot. I
understand he is a particularly successful pleader, and unusually
cunning, and I am afraid of Crowfoot. I saw the old Chief. He was
very cordial and is apparently loyal enough as yet, but you know,
sir, how much that may mean. I think that is all," said Cameron,
putting his hand up to his head. "I have a great deal more to tell
you, but it will not come back to me now. Little Pine must be
attended to, and for a day or two I am sorry I am hardly fit--
awfully sorry." His voice sank into a kind of undertone.
"Sorry?" cried the Superintendent, deeply stirred at the sight of
his obvious collapse. "Sorry? Don't you use that word again. You
have nothing to be sorry for, but everything to be proud of. You
have done a great service to your country, and we will not forget it.
In a few days you will be fit and we shall show our gratitude by
calling upon you to do something more. Hello, who's that?" A
horseman had ridden past the window toward the stables. Moira ran to
look out.
"Oh!" she cried, "it is that Mr. Raven. I would know his splendid
horse anywhere."
"Raven!" said Cameron sharply and wide awake.
"Raven, by Jove!" muttered the Inspector.
"Raven! Well, I call that cool!" said the Superintendent, a hard
look upon his face.
But the laws of hospitality are nowhere so imperative as on the
western plains. Cameron rose from his chair muttering, "Must look
after his horse."
"You sit down," said Mandy firmly. "You are not going out."
"Well, hardly," said the Inspector. "Here, Jerry, go and show him
where to get things, and--" He hesitated.
"Bring him in," cried Mandy heartily. The men stood silent,
looking at Cameron.
"Certainly, bring him in," he said firmly, "a day like this," he
added, as if in apology.
"Why, of course," cried Mandy, looking from one to the other in
surprise. "Why not? He is a perfectly splendid man."
"Oh, he is really splendid!" replied Moira, her cheeks burning and
her eyes flashing. "You remember," she cried, addressing the
Inspector, "how he saved my life the day I arrived at this ranch."
"Oh, yes," replied the Inspector briefly, "I believe I did hear
that." But there was little enthusiasm in his voice.
"Well, I think he is splendid," repeated Moira. "Do not you think
so?"
The Inspector had an awkward moment.
"Eh?--well--I can't say I know him very well."
"And his horse! What a beauty it is!" continued the girl.
"Ah, yes, a most beautiful animal, quite remarkable horse, splendid
horse; in fact one of the finest, if not the very finest, in this
whole country. And that is saying a good deal, too, Miss Moira. You
see, this country breeds good horses." And the Inspector went on to
discourse in full detail and with elaborate illustration upon the
various breeds of horses the country could produce, and to classify
the wonderful black stallion ridden by Raven, and all with such
diligence and enthusiasm that no other of the party had an opportunity
to take part in the conversation till Raven, in the convoy of Jerry,
was seen approaching the house. Then the Superintendent rose.
"Well, Mrs. Cameron, I fear we must take our departure. These are
rather crowded days with us."
"What?" exclaimed Mandy. "Within an hour of dinner? We can hardly
allow that, you know. Besides, Mr. Cameron wants to have a great
deal more talk with you."
The Superintendent attempted to set forth various other reasons for
a hasty departure, but they all seemed to lack sincerity, and after a
few more ineffective trials he surrendered and sat down again in
silence.
The next moment the door opened and Raven, followed by Jerry,
stepped into the room. As his eye fell upon the Superintendent,
instinctively he dropped his hands to his hips and made an
involuntary movement backward, but only for an instant. Immediately
he came forward and greeted Mandy with fine, old-fashioned courtesy.
"So delighted to meet you again, Mrs. Cameron, and also to meet
your charming sister." He shook hands with both the ladies very
warmly. "Ah, Superintendent," he continued, "delighted to see you.
And you, Inspector," he said, giving them a nod as he laid off his
outer leather riding coat. "Hope I see you flourishing," he
continued. His debonair manner had in it a quizzical touch of humor.
"Ah, Cameron, home again I see. I came across your tracks the other
day."
The men, who had risen to their feet upon his entrance, stood
regarding him stiffly and made no other sign of recognition than a
curt nod and a single word of greeting.
"You have had quite a trip," he continued, addressing himself to
Cameron, and taking the chair offered by Mandy. "I followed you part
way, but you travel too fast for me. Much too strenuous work I found
it. Why," he continued, looking narrowly at Cameron, "you are badly
punished. When did you get in?"
"Two hours ago, Mr. Raven," said Mandy quickly, for her husband sat
gazing stupidly into the fire. "And he is quite done up."
"Two hours ago?" exclaimed Raven in utter surprise. "Do you mean
to say that you have been traveling these last three days?"
Cameron nodded.
"Why, my dear sir, not even the Indians face such cold. Only the
Mounted Police venture out in weather like this--and those who want
to get away from them. Ha! ha! Eh? Inspector? Ha! ha!" His gay,
careless laugh rang out in the most cheery fashion. But only the
ladies joined. The men stood grimly silent.
Mandy could not understand their grim and gloomy silence. By her
cordiality she sought to cover up and atone for the studied and
almost insulting indifference of her husband and her other guests. In
these attempts she was loyally supported by her sister-in-law, whose
anger was roused by the all too obvious efforts on the part of her
brother and his friends to ignore this stranger, if not to treat him
with contempt. There was nothing in Raven's manner to indicate that
he observed anything amiss in the bearing of the male members of the
company about the fire. He met the attempt of the ladies at
conversation with a brilliancy of effort that quite captivated them,
and, in spite of themselves, drew the Superintendent and the Inspector
into the flow of talk.
As the hour of the midday meal approached Mandy rose from her place
by the fire and said:
"You will stay with us to dinner, Mr. Raven? We dine at midday.
It is not often we have such a distinguished and interesting
company."
"Thank you, no," said Raven. "I merely looked in to give your
husband a bit of interesting information. And, by the way, I have a
bit of information that might interest the Superintendent as well."
"Well," said Mandy, "we are to have the pleasure of the
Superintendent and the Inspector to dinner with us to-day, and you
can give them all the information you think necessary while you are
waiting."
Raven hesitated while he glanced at the faces of the men beside
him. What he read there drew from him a little hard smile of amused
contempt.
"Please do not ask me again, Mrs. Cameron," he said. "You know not
how you strain my powers of resistance when I really dare not--may
not," he corrected himself with a quick glance at the Superintendent,
"stay in this most interesting company and enjoy your most grateful
hospitality any longer. And now my information is soon given. First
of all for you, Cameron--I shall not apologize to you, Mrs. Cameron,
for delivering it in your presence. I do you the honor to believe
that you ought to know--briefly my information is this. Little Pine,
in whose movements you are all interested, I understand, is at this
present moment lodging with the Sarcee Indians, and next week will
move on to visit old Crowfoot. The Sarcee visit amounts to little,
but the visit to old Crowfoot--well, I need say no more to you,
Cameron. Probably you know more about the inside workings of old
Crowfoot's mind than I do."
"Visiting Crowfoot?" exclaimed Cameron. "Then I was there too
soon."
"That is his present intention, and I have no doubt the program
will be carried out," said Raven. "My information is from the
inside. Of course," he continued, "I know you have run across the
trail of the North Cree and Salteaux runners from Big Bear and
Beardy. They are not to be despised. But Little Pine is a different
person from these gentlemen. The big game is scheduled for the early
spring, will probably come off in about six weeks. And now," he said,
rising from his chair, "I must be off."
At this point Smith came in and quietly took a seat beside Jerry
near the door.
"And what's your information for me, Mr. Raven?" inquired the
Superintendent. "You are not going to deprive me of my bit of news?"
"Ah, yes--news," replied Raven, sitting down again. "Briefly this.
Little Thunder has yielded to some powerful pressure and has again
found it necessary to visit this country, I need hardly add, against
my desire."
"Little Thunder?" exclaimed the Superintendent, and his tone
indicated something more than surprise. "Then there will be
something doing. And where does this--ah--this--ah--friend of yours
propose to locate himself?"
"This friend of mine," replied Raven, with a hard gleam in his eye
and a bitter smile curling his lips, "who would gladly adorn his
person with my scalp if he might, will not ask my opinion as to his
location, and probably not yours either, Mr. Superintendent." As
Raven ceased speaking he once more rose from his chair, put on his
leather riding coat and took up his cap and gauntlets. "Farewell,
Mrs. Cameron," he said, offering her his hand. "Believe me, it has
been a rare treat to see you and to sit by your fireside for one
brief half-hour."
"Oh, but Mr. Raven, you are not to think of leaving us before
dinner. Why this haste?"
"The trail I take," said Raven in a grave voice, "is full of
pitfalls and I must take it when I can. The Superintendent knows,"
he added. But his smile awoke no response in the Superintendent, who
sat rigidly silent.
"It's a mighty cold day outside, "interjected Smith, "and blowing
up something I think."
"Oh, hang it, Raven!" blurted out Cameron, who sat stupidly gazing
into the fire, "Stay and eat. This is no kind of day to go out
hungry. It is too beastly cold."
"Thanks, Cameron, it IS a cold day, too cold to stay."
"Do stay, Mr. Raven," pleaded Moira.
He turned swiftly and looked into her soft brown eyes now filled
with warm kindly light.
"Alas, Miss Cameron," he replied in a low voice, turning his back
upon the others, his voice and his attitude seeming to isolate the
girl from the rest of the company, "believe me, if I do not stay it
is not because I do not want to, but because I cannot."
"You cannot?" echoed Moira in an equally low tone.
"I cannot," he replied. Then, raising his voice, "Ask the
Superintendent. He knows that I cannot."
"Do you know?" said Moira, turning upon the Superintendent, "What
does he mean?"
The Superintendent rose angrily.
"Mr. Raven chooses to be mysterious," he said. "If he cannot
remain here he knows why without appealing to me."
"Ah, my dear Superintendent, how unfeeling! You hardly do yourself
justice," said Raven, proceeding to draw on his gloves. His drawling
voice seemed to irritate the Superintendent beyond control.
"Justice?" he exclaimed sharply. "Justice is a word you should
hesitate to use."
"You see, Miss Cameron," said Raven with an injured air, "why I
cannot remain."
"No, I do not!" cried Moira in hot indignation. "I do not see,"
she repeated, "and if the Superintendent does I think he should
explain." Her voice rang out sharp and clear. It wakened her
brother as if from a daze.
"Tut, tut, Moira!" he exclaimed. "Do not interfere where you do
not understand."
"Then why make insinuations that cannot be explained?" cried his
sister, standing up very straight and looking the Superintendent fair
in the face.
"Explained?" echoed the Superintendent in a cool, almost
contemptuous, voice. "There are certain things best not explained,
but believe me if Mr. Raven desires explanation he can have it."
The men were all on their feet. Quickly Moira turned to Raven with
a gesture of appeal and a look of loyal confidence in her eyes. For a
moment the hard, cynical face was illumined with a smile of rare
beauty, but only for a moment. The gleam passed and the old, hard,
cynical face turned in challenge to the Superintendent.
"Explain!" he said bitterly, defiantly. "Go on if you can."
The Superintendent stood silent.
"Ah!" breathed Moira, a thrill of triumphant relief in her voice,
"he cannot explain."
With dramatic swiftness the explanation came. It was from Jerry.
"H'explain?" cried the little half-breed, quivering with rage.
"H'explain? What for he can no h'explain? Dem horse he steal de
night-tam'--dat whiskee he trade on de Indian. Bah! He no good-- he
one beeg tief. Me--I put him one sure place he no steal no more!"
A few moments of tense silence held the group rigid. In the center
stood Raven, his face pale, hard, but smiling, before him Moira,
waiting, eager, with lips parted and eyes aglow with successive
passions, indignation, doubt, fear, horror, grief. Again that swift
and subtle change touched Raven's face as his eyes rested upon the
face of the girl before him.
"Now you know why I cannot stay," he said gently, almost sadly.
"It is not true," murmured Moira, piteous appeal in voice and eyes.
A spasm crossed the pale face upon which her eyes rested, then the
old cynical look returned.
"Once more, thank you, Mrs. Cameron," he said with a bow to Mandy,
"for a happy half-hour by your fireside, and farewell."
"Good-by," said Mandy sadly.
He turned to Moira.
"Oh, good-by, good-by," cried the girl impulsively, reaching out
her hand.
"Good-by," he said simply. "I shall not forget that you were kind
to me." He bent low before her, but did not touch her outstretched
hand. As he turned toward the door Jerry slipped in before him.
"You let him go?" he cried excitedly, looking at the
Superintendent; but before the latter could answer a hand caught him
by the coat collar and with a swift jerk landed him on the floor. It
was Smith, his face furiously red. Before Jerry could recover himself
Raven had opened the door and passed out.
"Oh, how awful!" said Mandy in a hushed, broken voice.
Moira stood for a moment as if dazed, then suddenly turned to Smith
and said:
"Thank you. That was well done."
And Smith, red to his hair roots, murmured, "You wanted him to go?"
Commissioner Irvine sat in his office at headquarters in the little
town of Regina, the capital of the North West Territories of the
Dominion. A number of telegrams lay before him on the table. A look
of grave anxiety was on his face. The cause of his anxiety was to be
found in the news contained in the telegrams. An orderly stood behind
his chair.
"Send Inspector Sanders to me!" commanded the Commissioner.
The orderly saluted and retired.
In a few moments Inspector Sanders made his appearance, a tall,
soldierlike man, trim in appearance, prompt in movement and somewhat
formal in speech.
"Well, the thing has come," said the Commissioner, handing
Inspector Sanders one of the telegrams before him. Inspector Sanders
took the wire, read it and stood very erect.
"Looks like it, sir," he replied. "You always said it would."
"It is just eight months since I first warned the government that
trouble would come. Superintendent Crozier knows the situation
thoroughly and would not have sent this wire if outbreak were not
imminent. Then here is one from Superintendent Gagnon at Carlton. He
also is a careful man."
Inspector Sanders gravely read the second telegram.
"We ought to have five hundred men on the spot this minute," he
said.
"I have asked that a hundred men be sent up at once," said the
Commissioner, "but I am doubtful if we can get the Government to
agree. It seems almost impossible to make the authorities feel the
gravity of the situation. They cannot realize, for one thing, the
enormous distances that separate points that look comparatively near
together upon the map." He spread a map out upon the table. "And
yet," he continued, "they have these maps before them, and the
figures, but somehow the facts do not impress them. Look at this
vast area lying between these four posts that form an almost perfect
quadrilateral. Here is the north line running from Edmonton at the
northwest corner to Prince Albert at the northeast, nearly four
hundred miles away; then here is the south line running from Macleod
at the southwest four hundred and fifty miles to Regina at the
southeast; while the sides of this quadrilateral are nearly three
hundred miles long. Thus the four posts forming our quadrilateral are
four hundred miles apart one way by three hundred another, and, if we
run the lines down to the boundary and to the limit of the territory
which we patrol, the disturbed area may come to be about five hundred
miles by six hundred; and we have some five hundred men available."
"It is a good thing we have established the new post at Carlton,"
suggested Inspector Sanders.
"Ah, yes, there is Carlton. It is true we have strengthened up
that district recently with two hundred men distributed between
Battleford, Prince Albert, Fort Pitt and Fort Carlton. But Carlton
is naturally a very weak post and is practically of little use to us.
True, it guards us against those Willow Crees and acts as a check
upon old Beardy."
"A troublesome man, that Kah-me-yes-too-waegs--old Beardy, I mean.
It took me some time to master that one," said Inspector Sanders,
"but then I have studied German. He always has been a nuisance,"
continued the Inspector. "He was a groucher when the treaty was made
in '76 and he has been a groucher ever since."
"If we only had the men, just another five hundred," replied the
Commissioner, tapping the map before him with his finger, "we should
hold this country safe. But what with these restless half- breeds led
by this crack-brained Riel, and these ten thousand Indians--"
"Not to speak of a couple of thousand non-treaty Indians roaming
the country and stirring up trouble," interjected the Inspector.
"True enough," replied the Commissioner, "but I would have no fear
of the Indians were it not for these half-breeds. They have real
grievances, remember, Sanders, real grievances, and that gives force
to their quarrel and cohesion to the movement. Men who have a
conviction that they are suffering injustice are not easily turned
aside. And these men can fight. They ride hard and shoot straight
and are afraid of nothing. I confess frankly it looks very serious to
me."
"For my part," said Inspector Sanders, "it is the Indians I fear
most."
"The Indians?" said the Commissioner. "Yes, if once they rise.
Really, one wonders at the docility of the Indians, and their
response to fair and decent treatment. Why, just think of it! Twenty
years ago, no, fifteen years ago, less than fifteen years ago, these
Indians whom we have been holding in our hand so quietly were roaming
these plains, living like lords on the buffalo and fighting like
fiends with each other, free from all control. Little wonder if, now
feeling the pinch of famine, fretting under the monotony of pastoral
life, and being incited to war by the hot- blooded half-breeds, they
should break out in rebellion. And what is there to hold them back?
Just this, a feeling that they have been justly treated, fairly and
justly dealt with by the Government, and a wholesome respect for Her
Majesty's North West Mounted Police, if I do say it myself. But the
thing is on, and we must be ready."
"What is to be done, sir?" inquired Sanders.
"Well, thank God, there is not much to be done in the way of
preparation," replied the Commissioner. "Our fellows are ready to a
man. For the past six months we have been on the alert for this
emergency, but we must strike promptly. When I think of these
settlers about Prince Albert and Battleford at the mercy of Beardy
and that restless and treacherous Salteaux, Big Bear, I confess to a
terrible anxiety."
"Then there is the West, sir, as well," said Sanders, "the
Blackfeet and the Bloods."
"Ah, yes, Sanders! You know them well. So do I. It is a great
matter that Crowfoot is well disposed toward us, that he has
confidence in our officers and that he is a shrewd old party as well.
But Crowfoot is an Indian and the head of a great tribe with warlike
traditions and with ambitions, and he will find it difficult to
maintain his own loyalty, and much more that of his young men, in the
face of any conspicuous successes by his Indian rivals, the Crees.
But," added the Commissioner, rolling up the map, "I called you in
principally to say that I wish you to have every available man and gun
ready for a march at a day's notice. Further, I wish you to wire
Superintendent Herchmer at Calgary to send at the earliest possible
moment twenty-five men at least, fully equipped. We shall need every
man we can spare from every post in the West to send North."
"Very good, sir. They will be ready," said Inspector Sanders, and,
saluting, he left the room.
Two days later, on the 18th of March, long before the break of day,
the Commissioner set out on his famous march to Prince Albert, nearly
three hundred miles away. And the great game was on. They were but a
small company of ninety men, but every man was thoroughly fit for the
part he was expected to play in the momentous struggle before him;
brave, of course, trained in prompt initiative, skilled in plaincraft,
inured to hardship, oblivious of danger, quick of eye, sure of hand
and rejoicing in fight. Commissioner Irvine knew he could depend upon
them to see through to a finish, to their last ounce of strength and
their last blood- drop, any bit of work given them to do. Past
Pie-a-pot's Reserve and down the Qu'Appelle Valley to Misquopetong's,
through the Touchwood Hills and across the great Salt Plain, where he
had word by wire from Crozier of the first blow being struck at the
south branch of the Saskatchewan where some of Beardy's men gave
promise of their future conduct by looting a store, Irvine pressed his
march. Onward along the Saskatchewan, he avoided the trap laid by
four hundred half-breeds at Batoche's Crossing, and, making the
crossing at Agnew's, further down, arrived at Prince Albert all fit
and sound on the eve of the 24th, completing his two hundred and
ninety-one miles in just seven days; and that in the teeth of the
bitter weather of a rejuvenated winter, without loss of man or horse,
a feat worthy of the traditions of the Force of which he was the head,
and of the Empire whose most northern frontier it was his task to
guard.
Twenty-four hours to sharpen their horses' calks and tighten up
their cinches, and Irvine was on the trail again en route for Fort
Carlton, where he learned serious disturbances were threatening.
Arrived at Fort Carlton in the afternoon of the same day, the
Commissioner found there a company of men, sad, grim and gloomy. In
the fort a dozen of the gallant volunteers from Prince Albert and
Crozier's Mounted Police lay groaning, some of them dying, with
wounds. Others lay with their faces covered, quiet enough; while far
down on the Duck Lake trail still others lay with the white snow red
about them. The story was told the Commissioner with soldierlike
brevity by Superintendent Crozier. The previous day a storekeeper
from Duck Lake, Mitchell by name, had ridden in to report that his
stock of provisions and ammunition was about to be seized by the
rebels. Immediately early next morning a Sergeant of the Police with
some seventeen constables had driven off to prevent these provisions
and ammunition falling into the hands of the enemy. At ten o'clock a
scout came pounding down the trail with the announcement that Sergeant
Stewart was in trouble and that a hundred rebels had disputed his
advance. Hard upon the heels of the scout came the Sergeant himself
with his constables to tell their tale to a body of men whose wrath
grew as they listened. More and more furious waxed their rage as they
heard the constables tell of the threats and insults heaped upon them
by the half-breeds and Indians. The Prince Albert volunteers more
especially were filled with indignant rage. To think that half-breeds
and Indians-- Indians, mark you!--whom they had been accustomed to
regard with contempt, should have dared to turn back upon the open
trail a company of men wearing the Queen's uniform! The insult was
intolerable.
The Police officers received the news with philosophic calm. It
was merely an incident in the day's work to them. Sooner or later
they would bring these bullying half-breeds and yelling Indians to
task for their temerity.
But the volunteers were undisciplined in the business of receiving
insults. Hence they were for an immediate attack. The
Superintendent pointed out that the Commissioner was within touch
bringing reinforcements. It might be wise to delay matters a few
hours till his arrival. But meantime the provisions and ammunition
would be looted and distributed among the enemy, and that was a
serious matter. The impetuous spirit of the volunteers prevailed.
Within an hour a hundred men with a seven-pr. gun, eager to exact
punishment for the insults they had suffered, took the Duck Lake
trail. Ambushed by a foe who, regardless of the conventions of war,
made treacherous use of the white flag, overwhelmed by more than twice
their number, hampered in their evolutions by the deep crusted snow,
the little company, after a half-hour's sharp engagement with the
strongly posted enemy, were forced to retire, bearing their wounded
and some of their dead with them, leaving others of their dead lying
in the snow behind them.
And now the question was what was to be done? The events of the
day had taught them their lesson, a lesson that experience has taught
all soldiers, the lesson, namely, that it is never safe to despise a
foe. A few miles away from them were between three hundred and four
hundred half-breeds and Indians who, having tasted blood, were eager
for more. The fort at Carlton was almost impossible of defense. The
whole South country was in the hands of rebels. Companies of
half-breeds breathing blood and fire, bands of Indians, marauding and
terrorizing, were roaming the country, wrecking homesteads, looting
stores, threatening destruction to all loyal settlers and direst
vengeance upon all who should dare to oppose them. The situation
called for quick thought and quick action. Every hour added to the
number of the enemy. Whole tribes of Indians were wavering in their
allegiance. Another victory such as Duck Lake and they would swing to
the side of the rebels. The strategic center of the English
settlements in all this country was undoubtedly Prince Albert. Fort
Carlton stood close to the border of the half-breed section and was
difficult of defense.
After a short council of war it was decided to abandon Fort
Carlton. Thereupon Irvine led his troops, together with the gallant
survivors of the bloody fight at Duck Lake, bearing their dead and
wounded with them, to Prince Albert, there to hold that post with its
hundreds of defenseless women and children gathered in from the
country round about, against hostile half-breeds without and
treacherous half-breeds within the stockade, and against swarming
bands of Indians hungry for loot and thirsting for blood. And there
Irvine, chafing against inactivity, eager for the joyous privilege of
attack, spent the weary anxious days of the next six weeks, held at
his post by the orders of his superior officer and by the stern
necessities of the case, and meantime finding some slight satisfaction
in scouting and scouring the country for miles on every side, thus
preventing any massing of the enemy's forces.
The affair at Duck Lake put an end to all parley. Riel had been
clamoring for "blood! blood! blood!" At Duck Lake he received his
first taste, but before many days were over he was to find that for
every drop of blood that reddened the crusted snow at Duck Lake a
thousand Canadian voices would indignantly demand vengeance. The
rifle-shots that rang out that winter day from the bluffs that lined
the Duck Lake trail echoed throughout Canada from ocean to ocean, and
everywhere men sprang to offer themselves in defense of their country.
But echoes of these rifle-shots rang, too, in the teepees on the
Western plains where the Piegans, the Bloods and the Blackfeet lay
crouching and listening. By some mysterious system of telegraphy
known only to themselves old Crowfoot and his braves heard them almost
as soon as the Superintendent at Fort Macleod. Instantly every teepee
was pulsing with the fever of war. The young braves dug up their
rifles from their bedding, gathered together their ammunition,
sharpened their knives and tomahawks in eager anticipation of the call
that would set them on the war-path against the white man who had
robbed them of their ancient patrimony and who held them in such close
leash. The great day had come, the day they had been dreaming of in
their hearts, talking over at their council-fires and singing about in
their sun dances during the past year, the day promised by the many
runners from their brother Crees of the North, the day foretold by the
great Sioux orator and leader, Onawata. The war of extermination had
begun and the first blood had gone to the Indian and to his brother
half-breed.
Two days after Duck Lake came the word that Fort Carlton had been
abandoned and Battleford sacked. Five days later the news of the
bloody massacre of Frog Lake cast over every English settlement the
shadow of a horrible fear. From the Crow's Nest to the Blackfoot
Crossing bands of braves broke loose from the reserves and began to
"drive cattle" for the making of pemmican in preparation for the
coming campaign.
It was a day of testing for all Canadians, but especially a day of
testing for the gallant little force of six or seven hundred riders
who, distributed in small groups over a vast area of over two hundred
and fifty thousand square miles, were entrusted with the
responsibility of guarding the lives and property of Her Majesty's
subjects scattered in lonely and distant settlements over these wide
plains.
And the testing found them ready. For while the Ottawa authorities
with late but frantic haste were hustling their regiments from all
parts of Canada to the scene of war, the Mounted Police had gripped
the situation with a grip so stern that the Indian allies of the
half-breed rebels paused in their leap, took a second thought and
decided to wait till events should indicate the path of discretion.
And, to the blood-lusting Riel, Irvine's swift thrust Northward to
Prince Albert suggested caution, while his resolute stand at that
distant fort drove hard down in the North country a post of Empire
that stuck fast and sure while all else seemed to be sliding to
destruction.
Inspector Dickens, too, another of that fearless band of Police
officers, holding with his heroic little company of twenty-two
constables Fort Pitt in the far North, stayed the panic consequent
upon the Frog Lake massacre and furnished food for serious thought to
the cunning Chief, Little Pine, and his four hundred and fifty Crees,
as well as to the sullen Salteaux, Big Bear, with his three hundred
braves. And to the lasting credit of Inspector Dickens it stands that
he brought his little company of twenty-two safe through a hostile
country overrun with excited Indians and half- breeds to the post of
Battleford, ninety-eight miles away.
At Battleford, also, after the sacking of the town, Inspector
Morris with two hundred constables behind his hastily-constructed
barricade kept guard over four hundred women and children and held at
bay a horde of savages yelling for loot and blood.
Griesbach, in like manner, with his little handful, at Fort
Saskatchewan, held the trail to Edmonton, and materially helped to
bar the way against Big Bear and his marauding band.
And similarly at other points the promptness, resource, wisdom and
dauntless resolution of the gallant officers of the Mounted Police
and of the men they commanded saved Western Canada from the complete
subversion of law and order in the whole Northern part of the
territories and from the unspeakable horrors of a general Indian
uprising.
But while in the Northern and Eastern part of the Territories the
Police officers rendered such signal service in the face of open
rebellion, it was in the foothill country in the far West that
perhaps even greater service was rendered to Canada and the Empire in
this time of peril by the officers and men of the Mounted Police.
It was due to the influence of such men as the Superintendents and
Inspectors of the Police in charge of the various posts throughout
the foothill country more than to anything else that the Chiefs of
the "great, warlike, intelligent and untractable tribes" of
Blackfeet, Blood, Piegan, Sarcee and Stony Indians were prevented
from breaking their treaties and joining with the rebel Crees,
Salteaux and Assiniboines of the North and East. For fifteen years
the Chiefs of these tribes had lived under the firm and just rule of
the Police, had been protected from the rapacity of unscrupulous
traders and saved from the ravages of whisky-runners. It was the
proud boast of a Blood Chief that the Police never broke a promise to
the Indian and never failed to exact justice either for his punishment
or for his protection.
Hence when the reserves were being overrun by emissaries from the
turbulent Crees and from the plotting half-breeds, in the face of the
impetuous demands of their own young men and of their minor Chiefs to
join in the Great Adventure, the great Chiefs, Red Crow and Rainy
Chief of the Bloods, Bull's Head of the Sarcees, Trotting Wolf of the
Piegans, and more than all, Crowfoot, the able, astute, wise old head
of the entire Blackfeet confederacy, held these young braves back from
rebellion and thus gave time and opportunity to Her Majesty's Forces
operating in the East and North to deal with the rebels.
And during those days of strain, strain beyond the estimate of all
not immediately involved, it was the record of such men as the
Superintendents and Inspectors in charge at Fort Macleod, at Fort
Calgary and on the line of the Canadian Pacific Railway construction
in the mountains, and their steady bearing that more than anything
else weighed with the great Chiefs and determined for them their
attitude. For with calm, cool courage the Police patrols rode in and
out of the reserves, quietly reasoning with the big Chiefs, smiling
indulgently upon the turbulent minor Chiefs, checking up with swift,
firm, but tactful justice the many outbreaks against law and order,
presenting even in their most desperate moments such a front of
resolute self-confidence to the Indians, and refusing to give any sign
by look or word or act of the terrific anxiety they carried beneath
their gay scarlet coats. And the big Chiefs, reading the faces of
these cool, careless, resolute, smiling men who had a trick of
appearing at unexpected times in their camps and refused to be hurried
or worried, finally decided to wait a little longer. And they waited
till the fatal moment of danger was past and the time for
striking--and in the heart of every Chief of them the desire to strike
for larger freedom and independence lay deep--was gone. To these
guardians of Empire who fought no fight, who endured no siege, who
witnessed no massacre, the Dominion and the Empire owe more than none
but the most observing will ever know.
Paralleling these prompt measures of the North West Mounted Police,
the Government dispatched from both East and West of Canada regiments
of militia to relieve the beleaguered posts held by the Police, to
prevent the spread of rebellion and to hold the great tribes of the
Indians of the far West true to their allegiance.
Already on the 27th of March, before Irvine had decided to abandon
Fort Carlton and to make his stand at Prince Albert, General
Middleton had passed through Winnipeg on his way to take command of
the Canadian Forces operating in the West; and before two weeks more
had gone the General was in command of a considerable body of troops
at Qu'Appelle, his temporary headquarters. From all parts of Canada
these men gathered, from Quebec and Montreal, from the midland
counties of Ontario, from the city of Toronto and from the city of
Winnipeg, till some five or six thousand citizen-soldiers were under
arms. They were needed, too, every man, not so much because of the
possible weight of numbers of the enemy opposing them, nor because of
the tactical skill of those leading the hostile forces, but because of
the enemy's advantage of position, owing to the nature of the country
which formed the scene of the Rebellion, and because of the character
of the warfare adopted by their cunning foe.
The record of the brief six weeks' campaign constitutes a
creditable page in Canadian history, a page which no Canadian need
blush to read aloud in the presence of any company of men who know how
to estimate at their highest value those qualities of courage and
endurance that are the characteristics of the British soldier the
world over.
Superintendent Strong was in a pleasant mood, and the reason was
not far to seek. The distracting period of inaction, of doubt, of
hesitation was past, and now at last something would be done. His
term of service along the line of the Canadian Pacific Railway
construction had been far from congenial to him. There had been too
much of the work of the ordinary patrol-officer about it. True, he did
his duty faithfully and thoroughly, so faithfully, indeed, as to move
the great men of the railway company to outspoken praise, a somewhat
unusual circumstance. But now he was called back to the work that
more properly belonged to an officer of Her Majesty's North West
Mounted Police and his soul glowed with the satisfaction of those who,
having been found faithful in uncongenial duty, are rewarded with an
opportunity to do a bit of work which they particularly delight to do.
With his twenty-five men, whom for the past year he had been
polishing to a high state of efficiency in the trying work of
police-duty in the railway construction-camp, he arrived in Calgary
on the evening of the tenth of April, to find that post throbbing
with military ardor and thrilling with rumors of massacres and
sieges, of marching columns and contending forces. Small wonder that
Superintendent Strong's face took on an appearance of grim pleasure.
Straight to the Police headquarters he went, but there was no
Superintendent there to welcome him. That gentleman had gone East to
meet the troops and was by now under appointment as Chief of Staff to
that dashing soldier, Colonel Otter.
But meantime, though the Calgary Police Post was bare of men, there
were other men as keen and as daring, if not so thoroughly
disciplined for war, thronging the streets of the little town and
asking only a leader whom they could follow.
It was late evening, but Calgary was an "all night" town, and every
minute was precious, for minutes might mean lives of women and
children. So down the street rode Superintendent Strong toward the
Royal Hotel. At the hitching post of that hostelry a sad-looking
broncho was tied, whose calm, absorbed and detached appearance struck
a note of discord with his environment; for everywhere about him men
and horses seemed to be in a turmoil of excitement. Everywhere men in
cow-boy garb were careering about the streets or grouped in small
crowds about the saloon doors. There were few loud voices, but the
words of those who were doing the speaking came more rapidly than
usual.
Such a group was gathered in the rear of the sad-looking broncho
before the door of the Royal Hotel. As the Superintendent loped up
upon his big brown horse the group broke apart and, like birds
disturbed at their feeding, circled about and closed again.
"Hello, here's Superintendent Strong," said a voice. "He'll know."
"Know what?" inquired the Superintendent.
"Why, what's doing?"
"Where are the troops?"
"Is Prince Albert down?"
"Where's Middleton?"
"What's to be done here?"
There were many voices, all eager, and in them just a touch of
anxiety.
"Not a thing do I know," said Superintendent Strong somewhat
gravely. "I have been up in the mountains and have heard little. I
know that the Commissioner has gone north to Prince Albert."
"Have you heard about Duck Lake?" inquired a voice.
"Yes, I heard we had a reverse there, and I know that General
Middleton has arrived at Qu'Appelle and has either set out for the
north or is about to set out."
"Heard about Frog Lake?"
"Frog Lake? No. That is up near Fort Pitt. What about it?"
For a moment there was silence, then a deep voice replied:
"A ghastly massacre, women and children and priests."
Then another period of silence.
"Indians?" murmured the Superintendent in a low voice.
"Yes, half-breeds and Indians," replied the deep voice. And again
there was silence. The men waited for Superintendent Strong to
speak.
The Superintendent sat on his big horse looking at them quietly,
then he said sharply:
"Men, there are some five or six thousand Indians in this
district." They were all thinking the same thing. "I have twenty-
five men with me. Superintendent Cotton at Macleod has less than a
hundred."
The men sat their horses in silence looking at him. One could hear
their deep breathing and see the quiver of the horses under the
gripping knees of their riders. Their minds were working swiftly.
Ever since the news of the Frog Lake massacre had spread like a fire
across the country these men had been carrying in their minds--
rather, in their hearts--pictures that started them up in their beds
at night broad awake and all in a cold sweat.
The Superintendent lowered his voice. The men leaned forward to
listen. He had only a single word to say, a short sharp word it
was--
"Who will join me?"
It was as if his question had released a spring drawn to its limit.
From twenty different throats in twenty different tones, but with a
single throbbing impulse, came the response, swift, full-throated,
savage, "Me!" "I!" "Here you are!" "You bet!" "Count me!"
"Rather!" and in three minutes Superintendent Strong had secured the
nucleus of his famous scouts.
"To-morrow at nine at the Barracks!" said this grim and laconic
Superintendent, and was about turning away when a man came out from
the door of the Royal Hotel, drawn forth by that sudden savage yell.
"Hello, Cameron!" said the Superintendent, as the man moved toward
the sad-appearing broncho, "I want you."
"All right, sir. I am with you," was the reply as Cameron swung on
to his horse. "Wake up, Ginger!" he said to his horse, touching him
with his heel. Ginger woke up with an indignant snort and forthwith
fell into line with the Superintendent's big brown horse.
The Superintendent was silent till the Barracks were gained, then,
giving the horses into the care of an orderly, he led Cameron into
the office and after they had settled themselves before the fire he
began without preliminaries.
"Cameron, I am more anxious than I can say about the situation here
in this part of the country. I have been away from the center of
things for some months and I have lost touch. I want you to let me
know just what is doing from our side."
"I do not know much, sir," replied Cameron. "I, too, have just
come in from a long parley with Crowfoot and his Chiefs."
"Ah, by the way, how is the old boy?" inquired the Superintendent.
"Will he stick by us?"
"At present he is very loyal, sir,--too loyal almost," said Cameron
in a doubtful tone. "Duck Lake sent some of his young men off their
heads a bit, and Frog Lake even more. The Sarcees went wild over Frog
Lake, you know."
"Oh, I don't worry about the Sarcees so much. What of Crowfoot?"
"Well, he has managed to hold down his younger Chiefs so far. He
made light of the Frog Lake affair, but he was most anxious to get
from me the fullest particulars of the Duck Lake fight. He made
careful inquiries as to just how many Police were in the fight. I
could see that it gave him a shock to learn that the Police had to
retire. This was a new experience for him. He was intensely anxious
to learn also--though he would not allow himself to appear so--just
what the Government was doing."
"And what are the last reports from headquarters? You see I have
not been kept fully in touch. I know that the Commissioner has gone
north to Prince Albert and that General Middleton has taken command of
the forces in the West and has gone North with them from Qu'Appelle,
but what troops he has I have not heard."
"I understand," replied Cameron, "that he has three regiments of
infantry from Toronto and three from Winnipeg, with the Winnipeg
Field Battery. A regiment from Quebec has arrived and one from
Montreal and there are more to follow. The plan of campaign I know
nothing about."
"Ah, well," replied the Superintendent, "I know something about the
plan, I believe. There are three objective points, Prince Albert and
Battleford, both of which are now closely besieged, and Edmonton,
which is threatened with a great body of rebel Crees and Salteaux
under leadership of Little Pine and Big Bear. The Police at these
points can hardly be expected to hold out long against the
overwhelming numbers that are besieging them, and I expect that
relief columns will be immediately dispatched. Now, in regard to
this district here, do you know what is being done?"
"Well, General Strange has come in from his ranch and has offered
his services in raising a local force."
"Yes, I was glad to hear that his offer had been accepted and that
he has been appointed to lead an expeditionary force from here to
Edmonton. He is an experienced officer and I am sure will do us fine
service. I hope to see him to-morrow. Now, about the South,"
continued the Superintendent, "what about Fort Macleod?"
"The Superintendent there has offered himself and his whole force
for service in the North, but General Middleton, I understand, has
asked him to remain where he is and keep guard in this part of the
country."
"Good! I am glad of that. In my judgment this country holds the
key. The Crees I do not fear so much. They are more restless and
uncertain, but God help us if the Blackfeet and the Bloods rise! That
is why I called for volunteers to-night. We cannot afford to be
without a strong force here a single day."
"I gathered that you got some volunteers to-night. I hope, sir,"
said Cameron, "you will have a place for me in your troop?"
"My dear fellow, nothing would please me better, I assure you,"
said the Superintendent cordially. "And as proof of my confidence in
you I am going to send you through the South country to recruit men
for my troop. I can rely upon your judgment and tact. But as for
you, you cannot leave your present beat. The Sun Dance Trail cannot
be abandoned for one hour. From it you keep an eye upon the secret
movements of all the tribes in this whole region and you can do much
to counteract if not to wholly check any hostile movement that may
arise. Indeed, you have already done more than any one will ever know
to hold this country safe during these last months. And you must stay
where you are. Remember, Cameron," added the Superintendent
impressively, "your work lies along the Sun Dance Trail. On no
account and for no reason must you be persuaded to abandon that post.
I shall get into touch with General Strange to-morrow and shall
doubtless get something to do, but if possible I should like you to
give me a day or two for this recruiting business before you take up
again your patrol work along the Sun Dance."
"Very well, sir," replied Cameron quietly, trying hard to keep the
disappointment out of his voice. "I shall do my best."
"That is right," said the Superintendent. "By the way, what are
the Piegans doing?"
"The Piegans," replied Cameron, "are industriously stealing cattle
and horses. I cannot quite make out just how they can manage to get
away with them. Eagle Feather is apparently running the thing, but
there is someone bigger than Eagle Feather in the game. An additional
month or two in the guardroom would have done that gentleman no harm."
"Ah, has he been in the guard-room? How did he get there?"
"Oh, I pulled him out of the Sun Dance, where I found he had been
killing cattle, and the Superintendent at Macleod gave him two months
to meditate upon his crimes."
Superintendent Strong expressed his satisfaction.
"But now he is at his old habits again," continued Cameron. "But
his is not the brain planning these raids. They are cleverly done
and are getting serious. For instance, I must have lost a score or
two of steers within the last three months."
"A score or two?" exclaimed the Superintendent. "What are they
doing with them all?"
"That is what I find difficult to explain. Either they are running
them across the border--though the American Police know nothing of
it--or they are making pemmican."
"Pemmican? Aha! that looks serious," said the Superintendent
gravely.
"Yes, indeed," said Cameron. "It makes me think that some one
bigger than Eagle Feather is at the bottom of all this cattle-
running. Sometimes I have thought that perhaps that chap Raven has a
hand in it."
"Raven?" exclaimed the Superintendent. "He has brain enough and
nerve in plenty for any dare-devil exploit."
"But," continued Cameron in a hesitating voice, "I cannot bring
myself to lay this upon him."
"Why not?" inquired the Superintendent sharply. "He is a cool hand
and desperate. I know his work fairly well. He is a first-class
villain."
"Yes, I know he is all that, and yet--well--in this rebellion, sir,
I believe he is with us and against them." In proof of this Cameron
proceeded to relate the story of Raven's visit to the Big Horn Ranch.
"So you see," he concluded, "he would not care to work in connection
with the Piegans just now."
"I don't know about that--I don't know about that," replied the
Superintendent. "Of course he would not work against us directly,
but he might work for himself in this crisis. It would furnish him
with a good opportunity, you see. It would give him plenty of
cover."
"Yes, that is true, but still--I somehow cannot help liking the
chap."
"Liking the chap?" echoed the Superintendent. "He is a cold-
blooded villain and cattle-thief, a murderer, as you know. If ever I
get my hand on him in this rumpus-- Why, he's an outlaw pure and
simple! I have no use for that kind of man at all. I should like to
hang him!" The Superintendent was indignant at the suggestion that
any but the severest measures should be meted out to a man of Raven's
type. It was the instinct and training of the Police officer
responsible for the enforcement of law and order in the land moving
within him. "But," continued the Superintendent, "let us get back to
our plans. There must be a strong force raised in this district
immediately. We have the kind of men best suited for the work all
about us in this ranching country, and I know that if you ride south
throughout the ranges you can bring me back fifty men, and there would
be no finer anywhere."
"I shall do what I can, sir," replied Cameron, "but I am not sure
about the fifty men."
Long they talked over the plans, till it was far past midnight,
when Cameron took his leave and returned to his hotel. He put up his
own horse, looking after his feeding and bedding.
"You have some work to do, Ginger, for your Queen and country
to-morrow, and you must be fit," he said as he finished rubbing the
horse down.
And Ginger had work to do, but not that planned for him by his
master, as it turned out. At the door of the Royal Hotel, Cameron
found waiting him in the shadow a tall slim Indian youth.
"Hello!" said Cameron. "Who are you and what do you want?"
As the youth stepped into the light there came to Cameron a dim
suggestion of something familiar about the lad, not so much in his
face as in his figure and bearing.
"Who are you?" said Cameron again somewhat impatiently.
The young man pulled up his trouser leg and showed a scarred ankle.
"Ah! Now I get you. You are the young Piegan?"
"Not" said the youth, throwing back his head with a haughty
movement. "No Piegan."
"Ah, no, of course. Onawata's son, eh?"
The lad grunted.
"What do you want?" inquired Cameron.
The young man stood silent, evidently finding speech difficult.
"Eagle Feather," at length he said, "Little Thunder--plenty
Piegan-- run much cattle." He made a sweeping motion with his arm to
indicate the extent of the cattle raid proposed.
"They do, eh? Come in, my boy."
The boy shook his head and drew back. He shared with all wild
things the fear of inclosed places.
"Are you hungry?"
The boy nodded his head.
"Come with me."
Together they walked down the street and came to a restaurant.
"Come in and eat. It is all right," said Cameron, offering his
hand.
The Indian took the offered hand, laid it upon his heart, then for
a full five seconds with his fierce black eye he searched Cameron's
face. Satisfied, he motioned Cameron to enter and followed close on
his heel. Never before had the lad been within four walls.
"Eat," said Cameron when the ordered meal was placed before them.
The lad was obviously ravenous and needed no further urging.
"How long since you left the reserve?" inquired Cameron.
The youth held up three fingers.
"Good going," said Cameron, letting his eye run down the lines of
the Indian's lithe figure.
"Smoke?" inquired Cameron when the meal was finished.
The lad's eye gleamed, but he shook his head.
"No pipe, eh?" said Cameron. "Come, we will mend that. Here,
John," he said to the Chinese waiter, "bring me a pipe. There," said
Cameron, passing the Indian the pipe after filling it, "smoke away."
After another swift and searching look the lad took the pipe from
Cameron's hand and with solemn gravity began to smoke. It was to him
far more than a mere luxurious addendum to his meal. It was a solemn
ceremonial sealing a compact of amity between them.
"Now, tell me," said Cameron, when the smoke had gone on for some
time.
Slowly and with painful difficulty the youth told his story in
terse, brief sentences.
"T'ree day," he began, holding up three fingers, "me hear Eagle
Feather--many Piegans--talk--talk--talk. Go fight--keel--keel-- keel
all white man, squaw, papoose."
"When?" inquired Cameron, keeping his face steady.
"Come Cree runner--soon."
"You mean they are waiting for a runner from the North?" inquired
Cameron. "If the Crees win the fight then the Piegans will rise? Is
that it?"
The Indian nodded. "Come Cree Indian--then Piegan fight."
"They will not rise until the runner comes, eh?"
"No."
Cameron breathed more easily.
"Is that all?" he inquired carelessly.
"This day Eagle Feather run much cattle--beeg--beeg run." The
young man again swept the room with his arm.
"Bah! Eagle Feather is no good. He is an old squaw," said
Cameron.
"Huh!" agreed the Indian quickly. "Little Thunder go too."
"Little Thunder, eh?" said Cameron, controlling his voice with an
effort.
The lad nodded, his piercing eye upon Cameron's face.
For some minutes Cameron smoked quietly.
"And Onawata?" With startling suddenness he shot out the question.
Not a line of the Indian's face moved. He ignored the question,
smoking steadily and looking before him.
"Ah, it is a strange way for Onawata to repay the white man's
kindness to his son," said Cameron. The contemptuous voice pierced
the Indian's armor of impassivity. Cameron caught the swift quiver
in the face that told that his stab had reached the quick. There is
nothing in the Indian's catalogue of crimes so base as the sin of
ingratitude.
"Onawata beeg Chief--beeg Chief," at length the boy said proudly.
"He do beeg--beeg t'ing."
"Yes, he steals my cattle," said Cameron with stinging scorn.
"No!" replied the Indian sharply. "Little Thunder--Eagle Feather
steal cattle--Onawata no steal."
"I am glad to hear it, then," said Cameron. "This is a big run of
cattle, eh?"
"Yes--beeg--beeg run." Again the Indian's arm swept the room.
"What will they do with all those cattle?" inquired Cameron.
But again the Indian ignored his question and remained silently
smoking.
"Why does the son of Onawata come to me?" inquired Cameron.
A soft and subtle change transformed the boy's face. He pulled up
his trouser leg and, pointing to the scarred ankle, said:
"You' squaw good--me two leg--me come tell you take squaw 'way
far-- no keel. Take cattle 'way--no steal." He rose suddenly to his
feet. "Me go now," he said, and passed out.
"Hold on!" cried Cameron, following him out to the door. "Where
are you going to sleep to-night?"
The boy waved his hand toward the hills surrounding the little
town.
"Here," said Cameron, emptying his tobacco pouch into the boy's
hand. "I will tell my squaw that Onawata's son is not ungrateful,
that he remembered her kindness and has paid it back to me."
For the first time a smile broke on the grave face of the Indian.
He took Cameron's hand, laid it upon his own heart, and then on
Cameron's.
"You' squaw good--good--much good." He appeared to struggle to
find other words, but failing, and with a smile still lingering upon
his handsome face, he turned abruptly away and glided silent as a
shadow into the starlit night. Cameron watched him out of sight.
"Not a bad sort," he said to himself as he walked toward the hotel.
"Pretty tough thing for him to come here and give away his dad's
scheme like that--and I bet you he is keen on it himself too."
The news brought by the Indian lad changed for Cameron all his
plans. This cattle-raid was evidently a part of and preparation for
the bigger thing, a general uprising and war of extermination on the
part of the Indians. From his recent visit to the reserves he was
convinced that the loyalty of even the great Chiefs was becoming
somewhat brittle and would not bear any sudden strain put upon it. A
successful raid of cattle such as was being proposed escaping the
notice of the Police, or in the teeth of the Police, would have a
disastrous effect upon the prestige of the whole Force, already shaken
by the Duck Lake reverse. The effect of that skirmish was beyond
belief. The victory of the half-breeds was exaggerated in the wildest
degree. He must act and act quickly. His home and his family and
those of his neighbors were in danger of the most horrible fate that
could befall any human being. If the cattle-raid were carried through
by the Piegan Indians its sweep would certainly include the Big Horn
Ranch, and there was every likelihood that his home might be
destroyed, for he was an object of special hate to Eagle Feather and
to Little Thunder; and if Copperhead were in the business he had even
greater cause for anxiety.
But what was to be done? The Indian boy had taken three days to
bring the news. It would take a day and a night of hard riding to
reach his home. Quickly he made his plans. He passed into the
hotel, found the room of Billy the hostler and roused him up.
"Billy," he said, "get my horse out quick and hitch him up to the
post where I can get him. And Billy, if you love me," he implored,
"be quick!"
Billy sprang from his bed.
"Don't know what's eatin' you, boss," he said, "but quick's the
word."
In another minute Cameron was pounding at Dr. Martin's door
upstairs. Happily the doctor was in.
"Martin, old man," cried Cameron, gripping him hard by the
shoulder. "Wake up and listen hard! That Indian boy you and Mandy
pulled through has just come all the way from the Piegan Reserve to
tell me of a proposed cattle-raid and a possible uprising of the
Piegans in that South country. The cattle-raid is coming on at once.
The uprising depends upon news from the Crees. Listen! I have
promised Superintendent Strong to spend the next two days recruiting
for his new troop. Explain to him why I cannot do this. He will
understand. Then ride like blazes to Macleod and tell the Inspector
all that I have told you and get him to send what men he can spare
along with you. You can't get a man here. The raid starts from the
Piegan Reserve. It will likely finish where the old Porcupine Trail
joins the Sun Dance. At least so I judge. Ride by the ranch and get
some of them there to show you the shortest trail. Both Mandy and
Moira know it well."
"Hold on, Cameron! Let me get this clear," cried the doctor,
holding him fast by the arm. "Two things I have gathered," said the
doctor, speaking rapidly, "first, a cattle-raid, then a general
uprising, the uprising dependent upon the news from the North. You
want to block the cattle-raid? Is that right?"
"Right," said Cameron.
"Then you want me to settle with Superintendent Storm, ride to
Macleod for men, then by your ranch and have them show me the
shortest trail to the junction of the Porcupine and the Sun Dance?"
"You are right, Martin, old boy. It is a great thing to have a
head like yours. I shall meet you somewhere at that point. I have
been thinking this thing over and I believe they mean to make
pemmican in preparation for their uprising, and if so they will make
it somewhere on the Sun Dance Trail. Now I am off. Let me go,
Martin."
"Tell me your own movements now."
"First, the ranch," said Cameron. "Then straight for the Sun
Dance."
"All right, old boy. By-by and good-luck!"
Cameron found Billy waiting with Ginger at the door of the hotel.
"Thank you, Billy," he said, fumbling in his pocket. "Hang it, I
can't find my purse."
"You go hang yourself!" said Billy. "Never mind your purse."
"All right, then," said Cameron, giving him his hand. "Good-by.
You are a trump, Billy." He caught Ginger by the mane and threw
himself on the saddle.
"Now, then, Ginger, you must not fail me this trip, if it is your
last. A hundred and twenty miles, old boy, and you are none too
fresh either. But, Ginger, we must beat them this time. A hundred
and twenty miles to the Big Horn and twenty miles farther to the Sun
Dance, that makes a hundred and forty, Ginger, and you are just in
from a hard two days' ride. Steady, boy! Not too hard at the first."
For Ginger was showing signs of eagerness beyond his wont. "At all
costs this raid must be stopped," continued Cameron, speaking, after
his manner, to his horse, "not for the sake of a few cattle--we could
all stand that loss--but to balk at its beginning this scheme of old
Copperhead's, for I believe in my soul he is at the bottom of it.
Steady, old boy! We need every minute, but we cannot afford to make
any miscalculations. The last quarter of an hour is likely to be the
worst."
So on they went through the starry night. Steadily Ginger pounded
the trail, knocking off the miles hour after hour. There was no
pause for rest or for food. A few mouthfuls of water in the fording
of a running stream, a pause to recover breath before plunging into an
icy river, or on the taking of a steep coulee side, but no more. Hour
after hour they pressed forward toward the Big Horn Ranch. The night
passed into morning and the morning into the day, but still they
pressed the trail.
Toward the close of the day Cameron found himself within an hour's
ride of his own ranch with Ginger showing every sign of leg weariness
and almost of collapse.
"Good old chap!" cried Cameron, leaning over him and patting his
neck. "We must make it. We cannot let up, you know. Stick to it,
old boy, a little longer."
A little snort and a little extra spurt of speed was the gallant
Ginger's reply, but soon he was forced to sink back again into his
stumbling stride.
"One hour more, Ginger, that is all--one hour only."
As he spoke he leapt from his saddle to ease his horse in climbing
a long and lofty hill. As he surmounted the hill he stopped and
swiftly backed his horse down the hill. Upon the distant skyline his
eye had detected what he judged to be a horseman. His horse safely
disposed of, he once more crawled to the top of the hill.
"An Indian, by Jove!" he cried. "I wonder if he has seen me."
Carefully his eye swept the intervening valley and the hillside
beyond, but only this solitary figure could he see. As his eye
rested on him the Indian began to move toward the west. Cameron lay
watching him for some minutes. From his movements it was evident that
the Indian's pace was being determined by some one on the other side
of the hill, for he advanced now swiftly, now slowly. At times he
halted and turned back upon his track, then went forward again.
"What the deuce is he doing?" said Cameron to himself. "By Jove!
I have got it! The drive is begun. I am too late."
Swiftly he considered the whole situation. He was too late now to
be of any service at his ranch. The raid had already swept past it.
He wrung his hands in agony to think of what might have happened. He
was torn with anxiety for his family--and yet here was the raid
passing onward before his eyes. One hour would bring him to the
ranch, but if this were the outside edge of the big cattle raid the
loss of an hour would mean the loss of everything.
"Oh, my God! What shall I do?" he cried.
With his eyes still upon the Indian he forced himself to think more
quietly. The secrecy with which the raid was planned made it
altogether likely that the homes of the settlers would not at this
time be interfered with. This consideration finally determined him.
At all costs he must do what he could to head off the raid or to
break the herd in some way. But that meant in the first place a ride
of twenty or twenty-five miles over rough country. Could Ginger do
it?
He crawled back to his horse and found him with his head close to
the ground and trembling in every limb.
"If he goes this twenty miles," he said, "he will go no more. But
it looks like our only hope, old boy. We must make for our old beat,
the Sun Dance Trail."
He mounted his horse and set off toward the west, taking care never
to appear above the skyline and riding as rapidly as the uncertain
footing of the untrodden prairie would allow. At short intervals he
would dismount and crawl to the top of the hill in order to keep in
touch with the Indian, who was heading in pretty much the same
direction as himself. A little further on his screening hill began
to flatten itself out and finally it ran down into a wide valley
which crossed his direction at right angles. He made his horse lie
down, still in the shelter of the hill, and with most painful care he
crawled on hands and knees out to the open and secured a point of
vantage from which he could command the valley which ran southward for
some miles till it, in turn, was shut in by a further range of hills.
He was rewarded for his patience and care. Far down before him at
the bottom of the valley a line of cattle was visible and hurrying
them along a couple of Indian horsemen. As he lay watching these
Indians he observed that a little farther on this line was augmented
by a similar line from the east driven by the Indian he had first
observed, and by two others who emerged from a cross valley still
further on. Prone upon his face he lay, with his eyes on that double
line of cattle and its hustling drivers. The raid was surely on.
What could one man do to check it? Similar lines of cattle were
coming down the different valleys and would all mass upon the old
Porcupine Trail and finally pour into the Sun Dance with its many
caves and canyons. There was much that was mysterious in this
movement still to Cameron. What could these Indians do with this herd
of cattle? The mere killing of them was in itself a vast undertaking.
He was perfectly familiar with the Indian's method of turning buffalo
meat, and later beef, into pemmican, but the killing, and the
dressing, and the rendering of the fat, and the preparing of the bags,
all this was an elaborate and laborious process. But one thing was
clear to his mind. At all costs he must get around the head of these
converging lines.
He waited there till the valley was clear of cattle and Indians,
then, mounting his horse, he pushed hard across the valley and struck
a parallel trail upon the farther side of the hills. Pursuing this
trail for some miles, he crossed still another range of hills farther
to the west and so proceeded till he came within touch of the broken
country that marks the division between the Foothills and the
Mountains. He had not many miles before him now, but his horse was
failing fast and he himself was half dazed with weariness and
exhaustion. Night, too, was falling and the going was rough and even
dangerous; for now hillsides suddenly broke off into sharp cut-banks,
twenty, thirty, forty feet high.
It was one of these cut-banks that was his undoing, for in the dim
light he failed to note that the sheep track he was following ended
thus abruptly till it was too late. Had his horse been fresh he
could easily have recovered himself, but, spent as he was, Ginger
stumbled, slid and finally rolled headlong down the steep hillside
and over the bank on to the rocks below. Cameron had just strength
to throw himself from the saddle and, scrambling on his knees, to
keep himself from following his horse. Around the cut-bank he
painfully made his way to where his horse lay with his leg broken,
groaning like a human being in his pain.
"Poor old boy! You are done at last," he said.
But there was no time to indulge regrets. Those lines of cattle
were swiftly and steadily converging upon the Sun Dance. He had
before him an almost impossible achievement. Well he knew that a man
on foot could do little with the wild range cattle. They would
speedily trample him into the ground. But he must go on. He must
make the attempt.
But first there was a task that it wrung his heart to perform. His
horse must be put out of pain. He took off his coat, rolled it over
his horse's head, inserted his gun under its folds to deaden the sound
and to hide those luminous eyes turned so entreatingly upon him.
"Old boy, you have done your duty, and so must I. Good-by, old
chap!" He pulled the fatal trigger and Ginger's work was done.
He took up his coat and set off once more upon the winding sheep
trail that he guessed would bring him to the Sun Dance. Dazed, half
asleep, numbed with weariness and faint with hunger, he stumbled on,
while the stars came out overhead and with their mild radiance lit up
his rugged way.
Suddenly he found himself vividly awake. Diagonally across the
face of the hill in front of him, a few score yards away and moving
nearer, a horse came cantering. Quickly Cameron dropped behind a
jutting rock. Easily, daintily, with never a slip or slide came the
horse till he became clearly visible in the starlight. There was no
mistaking that horse or that rider. No other horse in all the
territories could take that slippery, slithery hill with a tread so
light and sure, and no other rider in the Western country could handle
his horse with such easy, steady grace among the rugged rocks of that
treacherous hillside. It was Nighthawk and his master.
"Raven!" breathed Cameron to himself. "Raven! Is it possible? By
Jove! I would not have believed it. The Superintendent was right
after all. He is a villain, a black-hearted villain too. So, HE is
the brains behind this thing. I ought to have known it. Fool that I
was! He pulled the wool over my eyes all right."
The rage that surged up through his heart stimulated his dormant
energies into new life. With a deep oath Cameron pulled out both his
guns and set off up the hill on the trail of the disappearing
horseman. His weariness fell from him like a coat, the spring came
back to his muscles, clearness to his brain. He was ready for his
best fight and he knew it lay before him. Swiftly, lightly he ran up
the hillside. At the top he paused amazed. Before him lay a large
Indian encampment with rows upon rows of tents and camp fires with
kettles swinging, and everywhere Indians and squaws moving about.
Skirting the camp and still keeping to the side of the hill, he came
upon a stout new-built fence that ran straight down an incline to a
steep cut-bank with a sheer drop of thirty feet or more. Like a flash
the meaning of it came upon him. This was to be the end of the drive.
Here the cattle were to meet their death. Here it was that the
pemmican was to be made. On the hillside opposite there was doubtless
a similar fence and these two would constitute the fatal funnel down
which the cattle were to be stampeded over the cut-bank to their
destruction. This was the nefarious scheme planned by Raven and his
treacherous allies.
Swiftly Cameron turned and followed the fence up the incline some
three or four hundred yards from the cut-bank. At its upper end the
fence curved outward for some distance upon a wide upland valley, then
ceased altogether. Such was the slope of the hill that no living man
could turn a herd of cattle once entered upon that steep incline.
Down the hill, across the valley and up the other side ran Cameron,
keeping low and carefully picking his way among the loose stones till
he came to the other fence which, curving similarly outward, made with
its fellow a perfectly completed funnel. Once between the curving
lips of this funnel nothing could save the rushing, crowding cattle
from the deadly cut-bank below.
"Oh, if I only had my horse," groaned Cameron, "I might have a
chance to turn them off just here."
At the point at which he stood the slope of the hillside fell
somewhat toward the left and away slightly from the mouth of the
funnel. A skilled cowboy with sufficient nerve, on a first-class
horse, might turn the herd away from the cut-bank into the little
coulee that led down from the end of the fence, but for a man on foot
the thing was quite impossible. He determined, however, to make the
effort. No man can certainly tell how cattle will behave when excited
and at night.
As he stood there rapidly planning how to divert the rush of cattle
from that deadly funnel, there rose on the still night air a soft
rumbling sound like low and distant thunder. That sound Cameron knew
only too well. It was the pounding of two hundred steers upon the
resounding prairie. He rushed back again to the right side of the
fenced runway, and then forward to meet the coming herd. A half moon
rising over the round top of the hill revealed the black surging mass
of steers, their hoofs pounding like distant artillery, their horns
rattling like a continuous crash of riflery. Before them at a
distance of a hundred yards or more a mounted Indian rode toward the
farther side of the funnel and took his stand at the very spot at
which there was some hope of diverting the rushing herd from the
cut-bank down the side coulee to safety.
"That man has got to go," said Cameron to himself, drawing his gun.
But before he could level it there shot out from the dim light behind
the Indian a man on horseback. Like a lion on its prey the horse
leaped with a wicked scream at the Indian pony. Before that furious
leap both man and pony went down and rolled over and over in front of
the pounding herd. Over the prostrate pony leaped the horse and up
the hillside fair in the face of that rushing mass of maddened steers.
Straight across their face sped the horse and his rider, galloping
lightly, with never a swerve or hesitation, then swiftly wheeling as
the steers drew almost level with him he darted furiously on their
flank and rode close at their noses. "Crack! Crack!" rang the rider's
revolver, and two steers in the far flank dropped to the earth while
over them surged the following herd. Again the revolver rang out,
once, twice, thrice, and at each crack a leader on the flank farthest
away plunged down and was submerged by the rushing tide behind. For
an instant the column faltered on its left and slowly began to swerve
in that direction. Then upon the leaders of the right flank the black
horse charged furiously, biting, kicking, plunging like a thing
possessed of ten thousand devils. Steadily, surely the line continued
to swerve.
"My God!" cried Cameron, unable to believe his eyes. "They are
turning! They are turned!"
With wild cries and discharging his revolver fair in the face of
the leaders, Cameron rushed out into the open and crossed the mouth
of the funnel.
"Go back, you fool! Go back!" yelled the man on horseback. "Go
back! I have them!" He was right. Cameron's sudden appearance gave
the final and necessary touch to the swerving movement. Across the
mouth of the funnel with its yawning deadly cut-bank, and down the
side coulee, carrying part of the fence with them, the herd crashed
onward, with the black horse hanging on their flank still biting and
kicking with a kind of joyous fury.
"Raven! Raven!" cried Cameron in glad accents. "It is Raven!
Thank God, he is straight after all!" A great tide of gratitude and
admiration for the outlaw was welling up in his heart. But even as he
ran there thundered past him an Indian on horseback, the reins flying
loose and a rifle in his hands. As he flashed past a gleam of
moonlight caught his face, the face of a demon.
"Little Thunder!" cried Cameron, whipping out his gun and firing,
but with no apparent effect, at the flying figure.
With his gun still in his hand, Cameron ran on down the coulee in
the wake of Little Thunder. Far away could be heard the roar of the
rushing herd, but nothing could be seen of Raven. Running as he had
never run in his life, Cameron followed hard upon the Indian's track,
who was by this time some hundred yards in advance. Suddenly in the
moonlight, and far down the coulee, Raven could be seen upon his black
horse cantering easily up the slope and toward the swiftly approaching
Indian.
"Raven! Raven!" shouted Cameron, firing his gun. "On guard! On
guard!"
Raven heard, looked up and saw the Indian bearing down upon him.
His horse, too, saw the approaching foe and, gathering himself, in
two short leaps rushed like a whirlwind at him, but, swerving aside,
the Indian avoided the charging stallion. Cameron saw his rifle go up
to his shoulder, a shot reverberated through the coulee, Raven swayed
in his saddle. A second shot and the black horse was fair upon the
Indian pony, hurling him to the ground and falling himself upon him.
As the Indian sprang to his feet Raven was upon him. He gripped him
by the throat and shook him as a dog shakes a rat. Once, twice, his
pistol fell upon the snarling face and the Indian crumpled up and lay
still, battered to death.
"Thank God!" cried Cameron, as he came up, struggling with his
sobbing breath. "You have got the beast."
"Yes, I have got him," said Raven, with his hand to his side, "but
I guess he has got me too. And--" he paused. His eye fell upon his
horse lying upon his side and feebly kicking--"ah, I fear he has got
you as well, Nighthawk, old boy." As he staggered over toward his
horse the sound of galloping hoofs was heard coming down the coulee.
"Here are some more of them!" cried Cameron, drawing out his guns.
"All right, Cameron, my boy, just back up here beside me," said
Raven, as he coolly loaded his empty revolver. "We can send a few
more of these devils to hell. You are a good sport, old chap, and I
want to go out in no better company."
"Hold up!" cried Cameron. "There is a woman. Why, there is a
Policeman. They are friends, Raven. It is the doctor and Moira.
Hurrah! Here you are, Martin. Quick! Quick! Oh, my God! He is
dying!"
Raven had sunk to his knees beside his horse. They gathered round
him, a Mounted Police patrol picked up on the way by Dr. Martin,
Moira who had come to show them the trail, and Smith.
"Nighthawk, old boy," they heard Raven say, his hand patting the
shoulder of the noble animal, "he has done for you, I fear." His
voice came in broken sobs. The great horse lifted his beautiful head
and looked round toward his master. "Ah, my boy, we have done many a
journey together!" cried Raven as he threw his arm around the glossy
neck, "and on this last one too we shall not be far apart." The horse
gave a slight whinny, nosed into his master's hand and laid his head
down again. A slight quiver of the limbs and he was still for ever.
"Ah, he has gone!" cried Raven, "my best, my only friend."
"No, no," cried Cameron, "you are with friends now, Raven, old
man." He offered his hand. Raven took it wonderingly.
"You mean it, Cameron?"
"Yes, with all my heart. You are a true man, if God ever made one,
and you have shown it to-night."
"Ah!" said Raven, with a kind of sigh as he sank back and leaned up
against his horse. "That is good to hear. It is long since I have
had a friend."
"Quick, Martin!" said Cameron. "He is wounded."
"What? Where?" said the doctor, kneeling down beside him and
tearing open his coat and vest. "Oh, my God!" cried the doctor. "He
is--" The doctor paused abruptly.
"What do you say? Oh, Dr. Martin, he is not badly wounded?" Moira
threw herself on her knees beside the wounded man and caught his
hand. "Oh, it is cold, cold," she cried through rushing tears. "Can
you not help him? Oh, you must not let him die."
"Surely he is not dying?" said Cameron.
The doctor was silently and swiftly working with his syringe.
"How long, Doctor?" inquired Raven in a quiet voice.
"Half an hour, perhaps less," said the doctor brokenly. "Have you
any pain?"
"No, very little. It is quite easy. Cameron," he said, his voice
beginning to fail, "I want you to send a letter which you will find
in my pocket addressed to my brother. Tell no one the name. And add
this, that I forgive him. It was really not worth while," he added
wearily, "to hate him so. And say to the Superintendent I was on the
straight with him, with you all, with my country in this rebellion
business. I heard about this raid; and I fancy I have rather spoiled
their pemmican. I have run some cattle in my time, but you know,
Cameron, a fellow who has worn the uniform could not mix in with these
beastly breeds against the Queen, God bless her!"
"Oh, Dr. Martin," cried the girl piteously, shaking him by the arm,
"do not tell me you can do nothing. Try--try something." She began
again to chafe the cold hand, her tears falling upon it.
Raven looked up quickly at her.
"You are weeping for me, Miss Moira?" he said, surprise and wonder
in his face. "For me? A horse-thief, an outlaw, for me? I thank
you. And forgive me--may I kiss your hand?" He tried feebly to lift
her hand to his lips.
"No, no," cried the girl. "Not my hand!" and leaning over him she
kissed him on the brow. His eyes were still upon her.
"Thank you," he said feebly, a rare, beautiful smile lighting up
the white face. "You make me believe in God's mercy."
There was a quick movement in the group and Smith was kneeling
beside the dying man.
"God's mercy, Mr. Raven," he said in an eager voice, "is infinite.
Why should you not believe in it?"
Raven looked at him curiously.
"Oh, yes," he said with a quaintly humorous smile, "you are the
chap that chucked Jerry away from the door?"
Smith nodded, then said earnestly:
"Mr. Raven, you must believe in God's mercy."
"God's mercy," said the dying man slowly. "Yes, God's mercy. What
is it again? 'God--be--merciful--to me--a sinner.'" Once more he
opened his eyes and let them rest upon the face of the girl bending
over him. "Yes," he said, "you helped me to believe in God's mercy."
With a sigh as of content he settled himself quietly against the
shoulders of his dead horse.
"Good old comrade," he said, "good-by!" He closed his eyes and
drew a deep breath. They waited for another, but there was no more.
"He is gone," said the doctor.
"Gone?" cried Moira. "Gone? Ochone, but he was the gallant
gentleman!" she wailed, lapsing into her Highland speech. "Oh, but
he had the brave heart and the true heart. Ochone! Ochone!" She
swayed back and forth upon her knees with hands clasped and tears
running down her cheeks, bending over the white face that lay so
still in the moonlight and touched with the majesty of death.
"Come, Moira! Come, Moira!" said her brother surprised at her
unwonted display of emotion. "You must control yourself."
"Leave her alone. Let her cry. She is in a hard spot," said Dr.
Martin in a sharp voice in which grief and despair were mingled.
Cameron glanced at his friend's face. It was the face of a haggard
old man.
"You are used up, old boy," he said kindly, putting his hand on the
doctor's arm. "You need rest."
"Rest?" said the doctor. "Rest? Not I. But you do. And you too,
Miss Moira," he added gently. "Come," giving her his hand, "you must
get home." There was in his voice a tone of command that made the
girl look up quickly and obey.
"And you?" she said. "You must be done."
"Done? Yes, but what matter? Take her home, Cameron."
"And what about you?" inquired Cameron.
"Smith, the constable and I will look after--him--and the horse.
Send a wagon to-morrow morning."
Without further word the brother and sister mounted their horses.
"Good-by, old man. See you to-morrow," said Cameron.
"Good-night," said the doctor shortly.
The girl gave him her hand.
"Good-night," she said simply, her eyes full of a dumb pain.
"Good-by, Miss Moira," said the doctor, who held her hand for just
a moment as if to speak again, then abruptly he turned his back on
her without further word and so stood with never a glance more after
her. It was for him a final farewell to hopes that had lived with him
and had warmed his heart for the past three years. Now they were
dead, dead as the dead man upon whose white still face he stood
looking down.
"Thief, murderer, outlaw," he muttered to himself. "Sure enough--
sure enough. And yet you could not help it, nor could she." But he
was not thinking of the dead man's record in the books of the Mounted
Police.
On the rampart of hills overlooking the Piegan encampment the sun
was shining pleasantly. The winter, after its final savage kick, had
vanished and summer, crowding hard upon spring, was wooing the bluffs
and hillsides on their southern exposures to don their summer robes of
green. Not yet had the bluffs and hillsides quite yielded to the
wooing, not yet had they donned the bright green apparel of summer,
but there was the promise of summer's color gleaming through the
neutral browns and grays of the poplar bluffs and the sunny hillsides.
The crocuses with reckless abandon had sprung forth at the first warm
kiss of the summer sun and stood bravely, gaily dancing in their
purple and gray, till whole hillsides blushed for them. And the
poplars, hesitating with dainty reserve, shivered in shy anticipation
and waited for a surer call, still wearing their neutral tints, except
where they stood sheltered by the thick spruces from the surly north
wind. There they had boldly cast aside all prudery and were flirting
in all their gallant trappings with the ardent summer.
Seeing none of all this, but dimly conscious of the good of it,
Cameron and his faithful attendant Jerry lay grimly watching through
the poplars. Three days had passed since the raid, and as yet there
was no sign at the Piegan camp of the returning raiders. Not for one
hour had the camp remained unwatched. Just long enough to bury his
new-made friend, the dead outlaw, did Cameron himself quit the post,
leaving Jerry on guard meantime, and now he was back again, with his
glasses searching every corner of the Piegan camp and watching every
movement. There was upon his face a look that filled with joy his
watchful companion, a look that proclaimed his set resolve that when
Eagle Feather and his young men should appear in camp there would
speedily be swift and decisive action. For three days his keen eyes
had looked forth through the delicate green-brown screen of poplar
upon the doings of the Piegans, the Mounted Police meantime
ostentatiously beating up the Blood Reserve with unwonted threats of
vengeance for the raiders, the bruit of which had spread through all
the reserves.
"Don't do anything rash," the Superintendent had admonished, as
Cameron appeared demanding three troopers and Jerry, with whom to
execute vengeance upon those who had brought death to a gallant
gentleman and his gallant steed, for both of whom there had sprung up
in Cameron's heart a great and admiring affection.
"No, sir," Cameron had replied, "nothing rash; we will do a little
justice, that is all," but with so stern a face that the
Superintendent had watched him away with some anxiety and had
privately ordered a strong patrol to keep the Piegan camp under
surveillance till Cameron had done his work. But there was no call
for aid from any patrol, as it turned out; and before this bright
summer morning had half passed away Cameron shut up his glasses,
ready for action.
"I think they are all in now, Jerry, he said. "We will go down.
Go and bring in the men. There is that devil Eagle Feather just
riding in." Cameron's teeth went hard together on the name of the
Chief, in whom the leniency of Police administration of justice had
bred only a deeper treachery.
Within half an hour Cameron with his three troopers and Jerry rode
jingling into the Piegan camp and disposed themselves at suitable
points of vantage. Straight to the Chief's tent Cameron rode, and
found Trotting Wolf standing at its door.
"I want that cattle-thief, Eagle Feather," he announced in a clear,
firm voice that rang through the encampment from end to end.
"Eagle Feather not here," was Trotting Wolf's sullen but disturbed
reply.
"Trotting Wolf, I will waste no time on you," said Cameron, drawing
his gun. "I take Eagle Feather or you. Make your choice and quick
about it!" There was in Cameron's voice a ring of such compelling
command that Trotting Wolf weakened visibly.
"I know not where Eagle Feather--"
"Halt there!" cried Cameron to an Indian who was seen to be
slinking away from the rear of the line of tents.
The Indian broke into a run. Like a whirlwind Cameron was on his
trail and before he had gained the cover of the woods had overtaken
him.
"Halt!" cried Cameron again as he reached the Indian's side. The
Indian stopped and drew a knife. "You would, eh? Take that, will
you?" Leaning down over his horse's neck Cameron struck the Indian
with the butt of his gun. Before he could rise the three constables
in a converging rush were upon him and had him handcuffed.
"Now then, where is Eagle Feather?" cried Cameron in a furious
voice, riding his horse into the crowd that had gathered thick about
him. "Ah, I see you," he cried, touching his horse with his heel as
on the farther edge of the crowd he caught sight of his man. With a
single bound his horse was within touch of the shrinking Indian.
"Stand where you are!" cried Cameron, springing from his horse and
striding to the Chief. "Put up your hands!" he said, covering him
with his gun. "Quick, you dog!" he added, as Eagle Feather stood
irresolute before him. Upon the uplifted hands Cameron slipped the
handcuffs. "Come with me, you cattle-thief," he said, seizing him by
the gaudy handkerchief that adorned his neck, and giving him a quick
jerk.
"Trotting Wolf," said Cameron in a terrible voice, wheeling
furiously upon the Chief, "this cattle-thieving of your band must
stop. I want the six men who were in that cattle-raid, or you come
with me. Speak quick!" he added.
"By Gar!" said Jerry, hugging himself in his delight, to the
trooper who was in charge of the first Indian. "Look lak' he tak' de
whole camp."
"By Jove, Jerry, it looks so to me, too! He has got the fear of
death on these chappies. Look at his face. He looks like the very
devil."
It was true. Cameron's face was gray, with purple blotches, and
distorted with passion, his eyes were blazing with fury, his manner
one of reckless savage abandon. There was but little delay. The
rumors of vengeance stored up for the raiders, the paralyzing effect
of the failure of the raid, the condemnation of a guilty conscience,
but above all else the overmastering rage of Cameron, made anything
like resistance simply impossible. In a very few minutes Cameron had
his prisoners in line and was riding to the Fort, where he handed them
over to the Superintendent for justice.
That business done, he found his patrol-work pressing upon him with
a greater insistence than ever, for the runners from the half- breeds
and the Northern Indians were daily arriving at the reserves bearing
reports of rebel victories of startling magnitude. But even without
any exaggeration tales grave enough were being carried from lip to lip
throughout the Indian tribes. Small wonder that the irresponsible
young Chiefs, chafing under the rule of the white man and thirsting
for the mad rapture of fight, were straining almost to the breaking
point the authority of the cooler older heads, so that even that
subtle redskin statesman, Crowfoot, began to fear for his own position
in the Blackfeet confederacy.
As the days went on the Superintendent at Macleod, whose duty it
was to hold in statu quo that difficult country running up into the
mountains and down to the American boundary-line, found his task one
that would have broken a less cool-headed and stout-hearted officer.
The situation in which he found himself seemed almost to invite
destruction. On the eighteenth of March he had sent the best of his
men, some twenty-five of them, with his Inspector, to join the Alberta
Field Force at Calgary, whence they made that famous march to Edmonton
of over two hundred miles in four and a half marching days. From
Calgary, too, had gone a picked body of Police with Superintendent
Strong and his scouts as part of the Alberta Field Force under General
Strange. Thus it came that by the end of April the Superintendent at
Fort Macleod had under his command only a handful of his trained
Police, supported by two or three companies of Militia--who, with all
their ardor, were unskilled in plain- craft, strange to the country,
new to war, ignorant of the habits and customs and temper of the
Indians with whom they were supposed to deal--to hold the vast extent
of territory under his charge, with its little scattered hamlets of
settlers, safe in the presence of the largest and most warlike of the
Indian tribes in Western Canada.
Every day the strain became more intense. A crisis appeared to be
reached when the news came that on the twenty-fourth of April General
Middleton had met a check at Fish Creek, which, though not specially
serious in itself, revealed the possibilities of the rebel strategy
and gave heart to the enemy immediately engaged.
And, though Fish Creek was no great fight, the rumor of it ran
through the Western reserves like red fire through prairie-grass,
blowing almost into flame the war-spirit of the young braves of the
Bloods, Piegans and Sarcees and even of the more stable Blackfeet.
Three days after that check, the news of it was humming through every
tepee in the West, and for a week or more it took all the cool courage
and steady nerve characteristic of the Mounted Police to enable them
to ride without flurry or hurry their daily patrols through the
reserves.
At this crisis it was that the Superintendent at Macleod gathered
together such of his officers and non-commissioned officers as he
could in council at Fort Calgary, to discuss the situation and to
plan for all possible emergencies. The full details of the Fish
Creek affair had just come in. They were disquieting enough,
although the Superintendent made light of them. On the wall of the
barrack-room where the council was gathered there hung a large map of
the Territories. The Superintendent, a man of small oratorical
powers, undertook to set forth the disposition of the various forces
now operating in the West.
"Here you observe the main line running west from Regina to the
mountains, some five hundred and fifty miles," he said. "And here,
roughly, two hundred and fifty miles north, is the northern boundary
line of our settlements, Prince Albert at the east, Battleford at the
center, Edmonton at the west, each of these points the center of a
country ravaged by half-breeds and bands of Indians. To each of these
points relief-expeditions have been sent.
"This line represents the march of Commissioner Irvine from Regina
to Prince Albert--a most remarkable march that was too, gentlemen,
nearly three hundred miles over snow-bound country in about seven
days. That march will be remembered, I venture to say. The
Commissioner still holds Prince Albert, and we may rely upon it will
continue to hold it safe against any odds. Meantime he is scouting
the country round about, preventing Indians from reinforcing the enemy
in any large numbers.
"Next, to the west is Battleford, which holds the central position
and is the storm-center of the rebellion at present. This line shows
the march of Colonel Otter with Superintendent Herchmer from Swift
Current to that point. We have just heard that Colonel Otter has
arrived at Battleford and has raised the siege. But large bands of
Indians are in the vicinity of Battleford and the situation there is
extremely critical. I understand that old Oo-
pee-too-korah-han-apee-wee-yin--" the Superintendent prided himself
upon his mastery of Indian names and ran off this polysyllabic
cognomen with the utmost facility--"the Pond-maker, or Pound-maker as
he has come to be called, is in the neighborhood. He is not a bad
fellow, but he is a man of unusual ability, far more able than of the
Willow Crees, Beardy, as he is called, though not so savage, and he
has a large and compact body of Indians under him.
"Then here straight north from us some two hundred miles is
Edmonton, the center of a very wide district sparsely settled, with a
strong half-breed element in the immediate neighborhood and Big Bear
and Little Pine commanding large bodies of Indians ravaging the
country round about. Inspector Griesbach is in command of this
district, located at Fort Saskatchewan, which is in close touch with
Edmonton. General Strange, commanding the Alberta Field Force and
several companies of Militia, together with our own men under
Superintendent Strong and Inspector Dickson, are on the way to
relieve this post. Inspector Dickson, I understand, has successfully
made the crossing of the Red Deer with his nine pr. gun, a quite
remarkable feat I assure you.
"But, gentlemen, you see the position in which we are placed in
this section of the country. From the Cypress Hills here away to the
southeast, westward to the mountains and down to the boundary- line,
you have a series of reserves almost completely denuded of Police
supervision. True, we are fortunate in having at the Blackfoot
Crossing, at Fort Calgary and at Fort Macleod, companies of Militia;
but the very presence of these troops incites the Indians, and in some
ways is a continual source of unrest among them.
"Every day runners from the North and East come to our reserves
with extraordinary tales of rebel victories. This Fish Creek
business has had a tremendous influence upon the younger element. On
every reserve there are scores of young braves eager to rise. What a
general uprising would mean you know, or think you know. An Indian
war of extermination is a horrible possibility. The question before
us all is--what is to be done?"
After a period of conversation the Superintendent summed up the
results of the discussion in a few short sentences:
"It seems, gentlemen, there is not much more to be done than what
we are already doing. But first of all I need not say that we must
keep our nerve. I do not believe any Indian will see any sign of
doubt or fear in the face of any member of this Force. Our patrols
must be regularly and carefully done. There are a lot of things
which we must not see, a certain amount of lawbreaking which we must
not notice. Avoid on every possible occasion pushing things to
extremes; but where it is necessary to act we must act with
promptitude and fearlessness, as Mr. Cameron here did at the Piegan
Reserve a week or so ago. I mention this because I consider that
action of Cameron's a typically fine piece of Police work. We must
keep on good terms with the Chiefs, tell them what good news there is
to tell. We must intercept every runner possible. Arrest them and
bring them to the barracks. The situation is grave, but not hopeless.
Great responsibilities rest upon us, gentlemen. I do not believe
that we shall fail."
The little company broke up with resolute and grim determination
stamped on every face. There would be no weakening at any spot where
a Mounted Policeman was on duty.
"Cameron, just a moment," said the Superintendent as he was passing
out. "Sit down. You were quite right in that Eagle Feather matter.
You did the right thing in pushing that hard."
"I somehow felt I could do it, sir," replied Cameron simply. "I
had the feeling in my bones that we could have taken the whole camp
that day."
The Superintendent nodded. "I understand. And that is the way we
should feel. But don't do anything rash this week. This is a week
of crisis. If any further reverse should happen to our troops it
will be extremely difficult, if indeed possible, to hold back the
younger braves. If there should be a rising--which may God forbid--
my plan then would be to back right on to the Blackfeet Reserve. If
old Crowfoot keeps steady--and with our presence to support him I
believe he would--we could hold things safe for a while. But,
Cameron, that Sioux devil Copperhead must be got rid of. It is he
that is responsible for this restless spirit among the younger
Chiefs. He has been in the East, you say, for the last three weeks,
but he will soon be back. His runners are everywhere. His work lies
here, and the only hope for the rebellion lies here, and he knows it.
My scouts inform me that there is something big immediately on. A
powwow is arranged somewhere before final action. I have reason to
suspect that if we sustain another reverse and if the minor Chiefs
from all the reserves come to an agreement, Crowfoot will yield. That
is the game that the Sioux is working on now."
"I know that quite well, sir," replied Cameron. "Copperhead has
captured practically all the minor Chiefs."
"The checking of that big cattle-run, Cameron, was a mighty good
stroke for us. You did that magnificently."
"No, sir," replied Cameron firmly. "We owe that to Raven."
"Yes, yes, we do owe a good deal to--to--that--to Raven. Fine
fellow gone wrong. Yes, we owe a lot to him, but we owe a lot to you
as well, Cameron. I am not saying you will ever get any credit for
it, but--well--who cares so long as the thing is done? But this Sioux
must be got at all costs--at all costs, Cameron, remember. I have
never asked you to push this thing to the limit, but now at all costs,
dead or alive, that Sioux must be got rid of."
"I could have potted him several times," replied Cameron, "but did
not wish to push matters to extremes."
"Quite right. Quite right. That has been our policy hitherto, but
now things have reached such a crisis that we can take no further
chances. The Sioux must be eliminated."
"All right, sir," said Cameron, and a new purpose shaped itself in
his heart. At all costs he would get the Sioux, alive if possible,
dead if not.
Plainly the first thing was to uncover his tracks, and with this
intention Cameron proceeded to the Blackfeet Reserve, riding with
Jerry down the Bow River from Fort Calgary, until, as the sun was
setting on an early May evening, he ca